Текст
                    dbook of the Russian Army 1914

HANDBOOK OF THE RUSSIAN ARMY. SIXTH EDITION. GENERAL STAFF, WAR OFFICE. 1914. (Corrections published in Russian Army Orders up to the end of 1913, are included in this Edition.)

iii PREFACE. Since the last edition of this handbook was published in 1908 the Russian army has passed through a stage of re- organization. The so-called “reserve formations,” which were to all intents and purposes first line troops, have been abolished and in their place have been created six new army corps, bringing the total number of army corps up to 37. Various other changes have been introduced to render the higher units homogeneous and thus simplify mobilization. The artillery has been re-armed, a division of howitzer artillery has been added to each army corps, and seven divisions of heavy field artillery created. The infantry and cavalry have been equipped with machine gun detachments. A new law of military service has been published. Other important changes are impending. Russia has decided to form several new army corps, a reorganization of the artillery into 6-gun batteries instead of 8-gun is believed to be in progress, new cavalry regiments are to be raised, and the organization of the air services is being completed. It is also probable that a change will be made in the terms of service, in order to retain the contingent which has com- pleted the present term of service with the colours till the new contingent has received sufficient training to be able to take its place in the ranks. The effect of this last change will be to increase the peace establishment of the Russian army during the winter and spring months by some 400,000—500,000 men. The establishments of the Russian army have not been published since 1910. The figures given in this handbook are based on those published in 1910 and on unofficial sources ; they should be taken as approximately correct only, (в 10626) A 2
iv CONTENTS. PAGE Chapter I.—Law of Military Service—Recruiting ... 7 „ II.—The Administration and Organization of the Army in Peace... ... ... 18 „ III.—The Organization of the Army in War 24 „ IV.—Infantry ... ... ... ... ... 39 „ V.—Cavalry .............................. 53 „ VI.—Artillery ... ... ... ...... 62 „ VII.—Technical Troops.................... 77 „ VIII.—Special Corps and Departments and Educational Establishments... ... 90 „ IX.—Medical and Veterinary... ... ... 100 „ X.—Transport, Supply and Intendance ... Ill „ XI.—Tactics ............................ 125
APPENDICES. PAGE I .—Peace Distribution of the Field, Cossack and Fortress Troops ... ... ... ... 145 II .—War formation of Cossack Cavalry ... ... 199 III .—Index to Army Corps, Divisions, and In- dependent Brigades ... ... ... ... 203 IV .—Alphabetical list of the titles of Russian regiments ........................................ 208 V .—Classified list of fortresses ........ ... 217 VI .—Distinguishing marks on field service dress of Russian army ...................... ... ... 219 VII .—Military hierarchy and titles.............. 251 VIII .—Particulars of field and siege guns in Russian army ... ... ... ... ... ... 254 IX .—Table of entrenching tools carried by units in the field ..................................... 257 X .—Establishments.............................. 259 XI .—Morse telegraphic and signalling codes ... 294 XII .—Russian alphabet and English equivalents ... 299 XIII .—Glossary of military terms ... ......... 301 XIV .—Conventional signs on military maps in Russia 308 XV .—Money, weights and measures... ... ... 311 Index ......................................... 313
LIST OF PLATES. Diagrams in text. Lines of Communication of an army. To face page 36. Method of Ammunition Supply in the field. To face page 71. Organization of Medical work in the field. To face page 104. Plates at end of book. 1. Conventional signs on the military maps of Russia. 2-4. Field uniforms of the Russian army. 5. Badges of rank (officers). 6. N.C.Os. badges of rank and badges of specialists. 7. Shoulder-straps and collar-patches on greatcoat. 8. Distinctions worn on uniform of guard units. 9. Shoulder-straps of infantry and cavalry units. 10. Special badges on shoulder-straps of technical and artillery units. 11. Shoulder-straps of technical and artillery units. 12. Company flags and Cossack banneroles. 13. Flags to denote H.Qs. of units. The illustrations of uniform and shoulder-straps, &c., in Plates 2-13 are reproduced by permission of Moritz Ruhl, publisher, Leipzic. Plate 1 is unavailable for this edition.
HANDBOOK OF THB RUSSIAN ARMY. CHAPTER I. LAW OF MILITARY SERVICE—RECRUITING. The land forces of the Russian Empire consist of the Standing Army {postoyanniya. voieka) and the Opolchenie or Imperial Militia. The Standing Army comprises— (i) The regular army and its reserve (zapas\ forming the regular troops (regulyarniya voiska); (ii) The Cossack troops ; (iii) The Alien troops (inorodtet).* Liability to service.—Military service in the Russian Empire is based on the decree (ukaz) of 14th January, 1874, which, as amended by decrees of later date,! enforces universal liability to personal military service throughout the whole of the Russian Empire, with the following excep- tions :— (a) The inhabitants of the Grand Duchy of Finland pay an annual “ contribution to the Imperial Treasury * These are the Daghestan horse regiment and the Oset and Turkoman horse divisions. The Oset horse division consists of conscripts, the Daghestan regiment and Turkoman division of volunteers (see page 9). t The laws of 27.rt.88, 1.2.93, and 6.7.12.
8 in lieu of personal service,” which, from a sum of £400,000 in 1909, increases annually by £40,000 till the maximum of £800,000 is reached in 1919.* (6) The Cossacks, who occupy Crown lands in return for military service, serve under special regulations (see pages 10-11). (c) Mohammedans of the native population of Trans- Caucasia and of the Kuban and Terek provinces pay a military tax instead of serving personally, except such as volunteer and enlist in the Oset and Daghestan cavalry or local militia. (The Christian natives of these populations serve under the same conditions as the Russian population of the Empire.) (d) The Samoyedes in the Government of Archangel, the native population of Turkistan, and of five small coastal districts in Eastern Siberia, and certain foreign tribes in the Governments of Astrakhan, Orenburg, and Stavropol, are exempted altogether from liability to personal military service. Liability to service begins with the 21st and ends with the 43rd year of a man’s age. Service in the Standing Army.—Service with the colours lasts for 3 years in the infantry and artillery (except horse artillery) and for 4 years in all other arms and services. Colour service counts from the 14th January following the date when the annual contingent joins (between October and November).! The period of service in the Reserve (zapcut) is 15 years for those who have served 3 years with the colours, and 13 years for those who have served 4 years. The Reserve is divided into two classes, as follows :—Those who have served 3 years with the colours serve 7 years in the 1st class reserve and 8 in the 2nd class; the remainder serve 7 years in the 1st class and 6 in the 2nd class. The ♦ In future Finland is to be required to pay an additional contribution to the Russian Government towards the cost of quartering Russian troops in the Grand Duchy. The annual amount of this contribution, which will be paid in equal instalments on the 28th May and the 28th November, is fixed for the vears 1914-23 at 2,894,740 Finnish marks (about £114,750). f It is proposed to increase the period of colour service by 3 months, and to retain the men till April, by which time the last-joined contingent will be fit to take their place in the ranks.
9 2nd class is upon mobilization utilized chiefly for the forma- tion of second line units and other services upon the lines of communication. Reservists are liable to two trainings of not more than 6 weeks each during their period of service in the 1st class of the reserve. Volunteers.—Persons who fulfil certain conditions as regards education may enlist as “short-term volunteers” ^volnoopredyelyayiLslichiesya). This is the class on whom the Russian army mainly relies for the supply of reserve officers on mobilization. They join between the 28th June and 14th July in each year, and serve 18 years—2 years with the colours and 16 in the reserve. The period of colour service may be reduced to 18 months* in the case of individuals who pass an examination for promotion to ensign (praporshch.ik'j at the end of their first year’s service. Short- term volunteers are allowed to go to the reserve after 15 months’ service, and return for 3 months’ service in the following training season, or to complete their 18 months’ colour service without a break. They are permitted to choose the arm and, as far as possible, the unit in which they wish to serve. Other “ volunteers ” (okhotniki) consist of three classes— (1) Men of 18 years of age and over, who wish to join before they reach the conscription age ; (2) Men who have been previously excused service (if under 30 years of age) ; (3) Men who have been permitted to postpone their service on account of family reasons. They are permitted to choose the arm in which they wish to serve. Unless they have educational qualifications, they serve the full period of colour service. + The only units in the Russian army recruited on a volun- tary basis are the Daghestan horse regiment and the Turkoman Horse Division. The men of the former receive * See page 15 as regards short-term volunteers of medical or veterinary education. t The provision permitting men to volunteer before reaching the con- scription age was only introduced in 1912. It is expected that in future many men will avail themselves of the new regulation» and thus reduce the average age of men serving in the ranks.
10 25 roubles and of the latter 30 roubles a month. They bring their own horses on joining and provide their own food and forage. Government supplies only a rifle and ammunition. Exemptions.—Men granted exemptions for family reasons are divided into four classes, Class I being excused service in the standing army altogether, except in the case of Jews. The other three classes are taken successively if required to complete the annual contingent—Class IV being first taken, then Class III, and lastly Class II. If only a portion of a class is required, recourse is had to lot drawing. Those of Classes II to IV not taken for the annual contingent are enrolled in the 1st Category of the Opolchenie. Exemptions of Class I are enrolled in the 2nd Category. Service in the Opolchenie.—The Opolchenie, which is liable to be called out only in time of war by Imperial Decree, comprises all men not serving in the Standing Army fit to bear arms from the 21st to the end of their 43rd year, and is divided into two categories. The 1st Category may be used to strengthen or complete the standing army, or to form special militia units, and includes all men up to their 43rd year who have served in the standing army, and all those men who have not been taken for the annual con- tingent but who are fit for active military service, except ex- emptions of Class I. The four youngest classes of the category last mentioned are kept under military control on special lists, and are liable to two trainings of six weeks each, if required. The 2nd Category comprises persons dis- charged from active units or from the reserve owing to unfitness for service as combatants, but who are still capable of bearing arms, and also men granted exemptions for family reasons in Class I. To facilitate the formation of militia units, small cadres of N C.Os., detached from the active army, are attached to the staffs of circle commanders. Conditions of service of Cossacks. —Cossacks serve under special regulations. They provide their own clothing, arms (except rifle and lance), equipment, and horse. Service begins on the completion of the 20th year1, and lasts for 18 years, divided into three periods. In the preparatory
11 class {prigotovitelni razryad} the men remain one year,* and are trained in their stanitsas or settlements. In the “field class ” (stroevoi razryad) the Cossacks remain 12 years, daring the first four of which they serve with the 1st Category regiments, battalions, or batteries of their Voisko or army. For the next 4 years they belong to the 2nd Category regiment, &c., and are on furlough (na Igotye) in their homes, but must keep their equipment and horses ready for service. For the last 4 years they belong to the 3rd Category regiment, &c., and are only bound to keep their equipment ready. Men of the 2nd Category are called out during their second and fourth years in that category, for a period of four weeks’ training. Those of the 3rd Category are called out for training only by special order of the War Minister. Finally, the last five years of a Cossack’s service are passed in the “ reserve class ” (zapasni razryad\ which is only drawn upon in war.t In addition, all Cossacks fit to bear arms, up to any age, may be called upon to serve in the levee en masse. The various Cossack Voiska have large funds for the equipment of their troops, which they administer themselves. The Ural Cossacks serve under slightly different rules. Recruiting. (1) Men.—The interior of the Empire, i.e., that portion of it which has an almost entirely Russian population, is divided into 208 “principal recruiting districts” (uyezdi), each of which is again subdivided into several recruiting subdivisions (prizivniye uchastki). These recruiting districts correspond in number to the 208 infantry regiments of the active army, but the system of recruiting is only partially territorial. { The one fixed rule is that not more than 25 per cent, of the recruits received by a unit must be of non-Russian origin. The 25 per cent, are recruited from * Except Cossacks of the Ural Voisko, who remain two years. t The 18 years’service of the Irkutsk and Krasnoyarsk Cossacks is divided as follows :—1 year in the preparatory class, 9 years in the line class (of which 3 are in actual service and 6 on furlough), and 8 years in the reserve class. I Roughly, units quartered in the interior of the Empire receive about 30 per cent, of recruits from their territorial recruiting district, 15-25 per cent, from the “ subsidiary recruiting districts,” and 55-45 per cent, from other recruiting districts where the population is Russian.
12 “ subsidiary recruiting districts,” in which the population is either non-Russian or scanty. The subsidiary recruiting districts embrace the Baltic Provinces, Poland and the Western frontier region generally, certain regions in the Volga basin, and Caucasia. The four principal recruiting districts of an infantry division are grouped together, ana to them is affiliated its artillery. Jewish recruits are dis- tributed, and none are sent to the Guard. Rifles, cavalry, horse artillery, engineers, and the Guard and Grenadier corps are recruited from the whole Empire. The number of men required to complete the army and navy is fixed by the legislature each year on the recom- mendation of the Ministers of War and Marine, and is pro- mulgated by an Imperial Decree. Contingents consist of those men who have completed 20 years by the preceding 14th January, so that the ordi- nary conscript is between 21 and 22 years of age when he joins the colours. The annual conscription takes place each year between the 14th October and the 14th November ; but, to suit local conditions in certain districts, it may commence as early as the 28th September, and in others may end as late as the 28th November. In time of war the annual contingent may be called out earlier by Imperial Decree. Service is reckoned to begin from the 14th January. Recruiting is carried out by recruiting committees, which are of two kinds—the district (uyezdni) committee and the government {gubemski) committee. The law of 1912 in- creased the proportion of military officers on these commit- tees. The same law, which came into force in 1913, introduced general conscription throughout the Empire, instead of conscription by subdivisions (uchastki). Pre- viously each subdivision was called on to furnish a quota of the annual contingent, and it frequently happened that classes with a claim to exemption for family reasons were called out in one subdivision and not in another. Under the new regulations the Minister of the Interior decides, from the lists furnished to him by the committees, what categories of conscripts it will be necessary to take in each year to complete the annual contingent, i.e., only men without claim to exemption, or, if men with such claims are required, w-hat classes or what percentage of a class, in cases where the whole class is not required.
13 A certain proportion of those not taken are inscribed on waiting lists, and should the classes called out prove insuf- ficient to fill the annual contingent, a supplementary con- tingent is called up at the beginning of March. Jews are borne on separate lists, and the place of a Jewish absentee is filled by a co-religionist who would other- wise be exempt. The minimum height is 5 ft. 0| ins. The annual contingent for the army and navy in 1911 was fixed at 455,000 men, of which 10,000 were required for the navy, and 14,500 for the frontier guard, the remaining 430,500 being required for the army. The number of men available for enrolment was 1,296,461, from which total 574,066 were deducted on account of— (1) exemptions for family reasons of Class I; (2) men considered wholly unfit for the active army and transferred to the 2nd category of the Opolchenie ; (3) absentees. The remaining 722,395 were subjected to the usual examination, and only 435,413 were actually enlisted, the shortage being 19,587* In the same year there were taken in addition 16,500 Cossacks and 100 Oset Mahommedans. A large addition to the annual contingent will probably be made shortly, to provide for the new army corps to be raised (see footnote on p. 21). (2) Non-commissioned officers.—N.C.Os. are selected from the ranks ; hitherto great difficulty has been experienced in inducing a sufficient number ui men to re-engage on the expiry of their term of colour service, so as to provide the required proportion of experienced N.C.Os. Accordingly new regulations were issued in 1911, increasing the pro- portion of re-engaged N.C.Os. and offering greater induce- ments to men to re-engage. By these regulations the existing grades of re-engaged N.C.Os. were termed “ 1st class,” with the rank of * The 1913 contingent was taken under the new regulations, which are expected to produce a great improvement. The scale of exemptions has been revised, and it is hoped that the strengthening of the military element on the recruiting committees will prevent the waste that formerly occurred by the enlistment of large numbers of men who have to be sub- sequently discharged as physically unfit, and that the increased penalties will reduce the number of absentees. It is expected that the new law will produce over-25,000 more men than the old law.
14 sub-ensign {podpraporghchik}, and a new or 2nd class was introduced. The full complement of the 2nd class is fixed at 24,000, of whom 3,600 were to be enrolled in 1911, and 6,000 each sub- sequent year till the class was complete. The number of the 1st class serving at the end of 1912 was 28,500. When the provisions of the new regulations are completed, the proportion of re-engaged N.C.Os. will be 6 per company, squadron and battery, of which three will be 1st class and three 2nd class. On mobilization a considerable number of the 1st class would be required to perform the duties of officers. The inducements held out to re-engaged men are increased pay and allowances, bounties on completion of a certain number of years’ service, pensions, medals and orders, and the right to a post in government employ on transfer to the reserve. The education of N.C.Os. is carried out in the instruc- tional detachment (uchebnaya komanda) formed in units for this purpose. Re-engaged N.C.Os. of the 2nd class before promotion to the 1st class must pass a course in schools, which are formed in each Division. They are then promoted as vacancies occur. The instructional detachment is formed in each unit (e..g.y regiment of infantry or cavalry, brigade or independent division of artillery) from the 1st March to 15th November. It is commanded by a captain, assisted by a varying number of subalterns as instructors (each instructor should have not more than 30 men to instruct), and is supervised by a field officer. It takes no part in the ordinary manoeuvres and training of its unit, except that it may take part in large manoeuvres as an organized company. Men wishing to join receive 2 mouths’ preliminary instruction in their companies, and have then to pass an entrance examination. The subjects of instruction are musketry, gymnastics, tactics, map- reading, religion, reading, writing, and arithmetic. An examination must be passed at the end of the course. The schools for the instruction of re-engaged N.C.Os. are formed in each division from 14th October to 14th June. The instructors are appointed by the divisional general. The subjects of instruction are the various regulations, musketry, tactics, topography, organiza- tion and the law of recruiting, fortification, military law, and arith- metic. An examination takes place at the end of the course. In addition, N.C.Os. receive special instruction in their units. The various grades of N.C.Os. are given in Appendix VII. (3) Officials (chinovniki).—The various officials of the Russian army (yoennie klassnie ckinovniki) are civilians.
16 They must have passed 6 classes of a primary school or qualified in an examination similar to that required for entry to a military school. Appointments as paymaster (kaznachei), accountant {dyeloproizvoditel po khozaistvennoi chatti), and quarter- master (polkovoi fcvartirmeister), require no further qualifi- cation, and these posts are mostly filled, on the nomination of the commanding officer, by men who have completed their obligatory service as clerks. An order of 1913 permits retired officers to become officials of the Intendance department in peace time. Surgeons are graduates of tne Military Academy of Medicine or of the medical school in some provincial university.* The veterinary surgeons are graduates of the Military Veterinary Institute. Both these classes serve as short-term volunteers. They join between 28th December and 14th January in each year and, after 4 months’ service in the ranks, may be promoted at the discretion of their commanding officer to the rank of official in their special department, in which rank they serve 16 months and may then be discharged to the reserve. The armourers (zavyedivayushchi orujiem) are trained in the technical schools at government arms factories. For the various grades of official, see Appendix VII. (4) Officers.—The officers are recruited from the Corps of Pages or military schools, 20 in number.! Previous to 1910-11 these were divided into “ military ” and “ yunker ” schools, of which the latter were originally intended for the training of volunteers who wished to become officers, and were inferior in standard and tone to the military schools. They have now been transformed into military schools with the same course and conditions as regards posting on completion of course as the original military schools. The regulations for entry still vary however, and tend to * See page 33, “ Handbook of the Medical Services of Foreign Armies: Part IV—Russia” (1910), for further details. t 11 for infantry, 2 for Cossacks, 3 for cavalry, 3 for artillery, 1 for engineers. A fourth artillery school is projected at Kiev and will be com- menced in 1914. Hitherto the two existing artillery schools (the third, at. Odessa, was only opened in the autumn of 1913) have been unable to supply sufficient officers for the artillery. It is also proposed to establish a second до ginger school at St, Petersburg for 340 cadets.
16 continue the social cleavage between graduates of the old military schools and the former yunker schools. The military course at infantry, cavalry, and Cossack schools lasts 2 years, but the former yunker schools retain for the present a preliminary general educational course of 1 year for those who have not passed the 7 classes of a secondary educational establishment (gimnazia) before join- ing. The military course at engineer and artillery schools lasts 3 years. A large number of officers receive their preliminary education in cadet corps, of which there are 29. The Corps of Pages, entry to which is open only to those of high social rank, combines the functions and courses both of a cadet corps and military school. Graduates of the military schools are divided after the final examination into three classes according to their conduct and general and military educational attainments. The 1st class, if of the requisite social standing, may join the Guard as sub-lieutenants (podporuchiki) or cornets {korneti), or if posted to the Line, may join with a year’s seniority. The 2nd class join the Line without ante-dating. The 3rd class join the Line to serve as under-officers for 6 months, after which they are promoted to the rank of officers on recommendation of their C.Os. Reserve officers.—Reserve officers are either officers who have served in the standing army as such, or candidates selected from men of superior education who have served as short-term volunteers (see page 9). The number of reserve officers is at present inadequate, and there is a great deficiency in the number required for a general mobilization. A number of places would have to be tilled by re-engaged N.C.Os. of the 1st class (podpraporshchiki). Officering of the Opolchenie.—In peace time a list of persons suitable for employment as officers in the Militia in case of mobilization is kept. The higher appointments, including the commands of companies, squadrons, and bat- teries, would be filled by retired officers of the army ; the junior officers would be recruited from such former N.C.Os. of the army as are possessed of certain educational attainments. Promotion of officers.—The general system of promotion in the Line is as follows: The average officer obtains his
17 commission at the age of 21. He obtains his first two steps automatically, to lieutenant (poruchiky* after 4 years’ service, to staff captain (shtabs-kapitany* after 4 years’ service as lieutenant. Four years’ service in this last rank qualifies for promotion to captain,* but a vacancy as company, squadron, &c., commander must be awaited. Thus a regimental officer who is lucky may become captain in 12 years. The rate of pro- motion varies much in different regiments, in spite of frequent transfers. There is among the staff captains and captains an undue proportion of men who are too old for their work. From captain onwards promotions are partly by seniority, partly by selection. By new regulations introduced in 1912, 55% of promotions from captain to lieut.-colonel will be by seniority, 35% will be accelerated promotions (of which 10% are reserved for graduates of the Imperial Nicolas Academy) and 10% will be promotions for distinguished service. Similar principles govern promotion from lieut.-colonel to colonel. Officers of the Guard have two important privileges. A Guard officer transferring to the Line joins his new unit in the rank superior to that which he held in the Guard, and, secondly, as the rank of lieut-colonel does not exist in the Guard, officers are promoted direct from captain to colonel. Officers of the General Staff are borne on a special list and have special rules as regards promotion. Tney have lately lost their privilege of a step in rank on passing out of the Imperial Nicolas Academy. Retirement of officers—The following are the ages for retirement for various appointments and ranks :— Army corps commanders .......................... 66 Commanders of infantry divisions ... 62 „ „ cavalry „ ... 60 „ ., infantry brigades ... 60 „ „ cavalry „ ... 58 ,. „ infantry regiments ... 58 „ „ cavalry „ ... 56 „ „ batteries ... ... 56 Other field officers ... ... ... 56 Other officers .........................55 To be qualified for promotion to next higher rank an officer must not be within 2 years of the retiring age for that rank. * Or corresponding rank» (See Appendix VII.) (в 10626) В
18 CHAPTER II. THE ADMINISTRATION AND ORGANIZATION OF THE ARMY IN PEACE. Administration. The supreme command of the military forces of the Empire is vested in the Emperor, and the principal channel through which his orders are promulgated to the army and carried into effect is the War Office (War Ministry). The War Office comprises— 1. The Imperial Headquarters (including a staff, a chancery, and the Cossack bodyguard). 2. The Military Council. 3. The Supreme Military Court of Appeal. 4. The Chancery of the War Minister. 5. The General Staff. 6. The Headquarter Staff. 7. The Intendance Directorate. 8. The Artillery Directorate. 9. The Military Technical Directorate. 10. The Military Educational Establishments Directorate. 11. The Military Judicial Directorate. 12. The Military Sanitary Directorate. 13. The Quartering Directorate. 14. The Army Veterinary Directorate. 15. The Remount Directorate. 16. The Alexander Committee for the Wounded. 17. The Selection Board. Al the head of the War Office stands the War Minister He is responsible to the Emperor alone, and reports direct to him on all matters concerning the Army. He has, however, no immediate financial control. The Military Council (Voenni Sovyet) is the supreme body for deciding questions of a legislative or economical nature. The War Minister is ex officio President of the Council; and the other mem- bers, 24 in number, are appointed by the Emperor. They are usually retired or unemployed officers of very high rank.
19 The General Staff (Generalni Shtdb) deals with military opera- tions and all matters immediately affecting them. It comprises 6 branches— (a) The Branch of the Quartermaster-General of the General Staff, which deals with Imperial defence, military operations, military history, fortresses, and intelligence. (6) The Military Communications Branch. (c) The Military Topographical Branch. (d) The Organization and Training Branch. (e) The Mobilization Branch. The Headquarter Staff (Glavni Shtab), which deals with matters of a routine nature, comprises— (a) The Branch of the Adjutant-General (Dejurni-General). (b) The Pension and General Service Branch. (c) The Cossack Branch. The Military Technical Directorate (formerly called the Engineer Directorate) deals with all technical matters, including Aeronautics and Railways. The duties of the remaining directorates are sufficiently explained by their titles. Inspections.—The Inspector-Generals and Inspectors are directly under the War Minister. They are six in number, viz.:— The Inspector-General of Cavalry. The Inspector-General of Artillery. The Inspector-General of Engineers. The Inspector-General of Military Educational Establishment. The Inspector of Railway Troops. The Inspector of Musketry. The office of Inspector-General of Infantry was abolished in 1909, and the appointment of an Inspector of Musketry created in its place. Infantry is inspected by the General Officers Commanding Military Districts. The Military Districts (Voennie okrugi).—The territory of the Empire is divided into 12 military districts and one separate province under general officers of high rank. These districts are subdivided for recruiting and mobilization purposes into 22 local brigades, which again are subdivided into a number of recruiting districts. The commanders of these local brigades also command such dep6t and local troops as are stationed within their territory. The army corps and such units as are not included in army corps are directly under the orders of the Military District Commander. A special staff is provided for each fortress to command all the troops in it. (в 10626) в 2
20 The military districts and their headquarters are:— St. Petersburg. St. Petersburg. Vilna. Vilna. Warsaw. W arsaw. Kiev. Kiev. Odessa. Odessa. Moscow. Moscow. Kazan. Kazan. Caucasian. Tiflis. Turkistan. Tashkend. Omsk. Omsk. Irkutsk. Irkutsk. Pri-Amur. Khabarovsk. The province is— Don Territory. Novo-Cherkassk. The distribution of the troops in each is given in Appendix I. The general in command of a military district is usually styled “Commander of the troops ”(komanduyushchi vois- kami), but in the St. Petersburg military district he is entitled “Commander-in-Chief of the troops of the Guard and the St. Petersburg military district,” in that of Warsaw he is also Governor-General, in that of the Caucasus he is also Viceroy and Ataman of the Cossacks of the Caucasus, in Turkistan he is also Governor-General of Turkistan and Ataman of the Semiryechie Cossacks, in the Omsk military district he is also Governor of the Steppe Provinces and Ataman of the Siberian Cossacks, in the Irkutsk military district he is also Ataman of the Trans-Baikal Cossacks, in the Pri-Amur military district he is also Ataman of the Amur and Ussuri Cossacks. He has a personal staff and is assisted by a District Military Council, composed of the Assistant to the Commander of the District, the heads of the Departments of the District Staff, and a member nominated by the War Minister. He has civil as well as military powers, and is directly under the War Minister. The District Headquarters comprise the following departments :— The District Staff (containing 3 sections, the Quarter- master General’s, the Adjutant General’s, and that of the Commander of Military Communications). The Intendance Department. The Artillery Department. The Quartering Department. The Medical Department. The Veterinary Department.
21 The Inspector of Engineer troops of the district is attached to the Headquarters or the district. The duties of these in peace correspond closely with those of an army in war as described on pp. 25-29. Local brigades.—These are commanded by lieutenant-generals or major-generals, who have a staff comprising 2 officers, and usually a lieutenant-colonel to assist in the preparation of mobilization. They command, subject to the Military District Commander, all local,* disciplinary and escort* troops in their territories, and, in time of war, depot battalions. They are assisted by the commandants of recruiting districts or circles (uyezdi). District commandants (yoinskie nachalnikz) are colonels or lieutenant- colonels. They exercise command over the local troops in the town where their headquarters are, and over the escort troops in their districts. They are members of the Government or District Recruiting Committee. They keep the registers of reservists and are responsible for mobilization in their districts and for the provision of the stores, clothing, and equipment necessary for the depot battalions to be formed in their districts. Organization. Army Corps.—There are at present 37+ army corps of the active army, viz., Guard, Grenadier, I to XXV, 1st to 3rd Caucasian, 1st and 2nd Turkistan, 1st to 5th Siberian. These include all the infantry and cavalry divisions (except the 11th Siberian Rifle Division) with their attached artillery and all rifle brigades except the 6th Turkistan. With few exceptions the troops take the field in the same order of battle in which they stand in peace, and a separate description of the peace organization is therefore un- necessary. Peace strength, and establishments.—On the 1st October, 1913, the Army consisted of :—J 1,284 battalions of infantry. 511 squadrons of cavalry. 327 sotnias of Cossacks. * See page 48. t It is reported that Russia has decided to form four new army corps, two in Europe, one in the Caucasus, and one in Asia; but no details have yet been published. J Including the lYontier Guard, but not including local troops, escort detachments, and certain Train cadres.
22 440 batteries of field artillery. 43 H mountain ,, 30 J, horse „ 11. Я horse mountain artillery. 39 n Cossack artillery. 75 J) ,5 howitzer „ 24 heavy „ 39 battalions of sappers. 9 pontoon battalions and 1 pontoon company. 16 battalions and 1 company of railway troops. 7 wireless telegraph companies. 2 air battalions and 9 air companies. 3 flying companies.* The peace establishments taken approximately as :— for the various arms may be Infantry................... 811,000 Cavalry ................... 133,000 Artillery ... ... ... 209,000 (3904 guns). Engineers ... ... ... 59,000 Auxiliary services ... 88,000 1,300,000 + Staff and Staff Duties.—Every staff of an infantry or cavalry division or independent rifle brigade and of all units larger than a division has at its head a Chief of the Staff, an officer of the General Staff, who superintends generally the work of all departments of that staff. In all cases a body of General Staff officers and adjutants is placed under him in order to carry out the staff duties. The departments which are not directly under the Chief of the Staff are those of the artillery, engineers, intendance, pay, and control, but the working of them is superintended by him. * A flying company will eventually be formed in each military district. t To this must be added between November of each year ana the follow- ing April the strength of the annual contingent (see footnote on page 8). In September and October also the peace strength is increased by the reservists called up for a course of training. In 1914 nearly 500,000 regular reservists will be called up for training.
23 The staff proper of an army corps is divided broadly into the Quartermaster-General’s and the Adjutant-General’s departments, and, that of an army into these and various other branches, including a department of the General of Communications. The Quartermaster-General’s department is officered entirely from the General Staff, and that of the Adjutant-General from staff-adjutants,* while officers of both branches are employed in the Communications’ Department. General Staff officers are recruited exclusively from officers who have passed the Imperial Nicolas Academy. These, after appointment to the General Staff, form a separate corps, from which they are detached only for periodical training with troops before each step of promotion. Broadly speaking, the duties of General Staff officers are those connected with the movements and operations of the army, intelligence and reconnaissance of the enemy, and reconnaissance of the theatre of war. Staff adjutants, in addition to performing staff duties of an administration and routine nature, are also largely employed as aides-de-camp to general officers, &c. Uniform of general and staff officers.—General and stall officers wear on manoeuvres and in the field, service dress as described on page 51 with blue breeches with a red stripe. The distinguishing marks of a general are his shoulder-straps (see Plate 5), the broad red stripes (lampas') on his breeches (see Plate 4) and the red lining of his great- coat. Officers of the staff are distinguished by their shoulder-straps (see Plate 5) and by the white cord aiguillettes which they wear. The wearing of aiguillettes on manoeuvres and in the field is, how- ever, optional. * Not to be confused with “senior adjutants” of the General Staff.
24 CHAPTER 1IL THE ORGANIZATION OF THE ARMY IN WAR. In war the army comprises the following :— Field troops (poleviya voiska). “ Reserve’’ troops (rezervniya voiska). Depdt troops (zapasniya voiska). Fortress troops (kryepostniya voiska). Local troops (myestniya voiska). The Imperial Militia (gosudarstvennoe opolchenie). The field troops comprise the units of the standing army, brought up to war strength by calling up the reserves. The cadres of “ Reserve ” troops maintained in peace were abolished in 1910, but on mobilization reserve divisions will probably be formed from the surplus reservists of the 1st class and the youngest of the 2nd class. (See page 34.) The depOt troops are formed on cadres detached from the units of the standing army, and are filled up by men of the reserve who are not required for the mobilization of the active units, by recruits, or by men of the four youngest classes of the Militia. They serve to keep the units of the standing army up to full strength in time of war. The fortress and local troops are used in war for garrison work only. The Militia has already been mentioned ; in time of war it forms independent units for home defence. I. The Field Army. As in the armies of other great European powers, the army corps is the unit upon which the organization of the Russian field army is based, and practically the whole of the units composing it are included in army corps. A
25 number of army corps grouped together form an army ; where circumstances require it, several of these armies may be grouped together under one command and may then be termed a group of armies. The Commander-in-Chief of the armies in the field is directly responsible to the Emperor alone, from whom he receives general directions for the conduct of the operations. His Chief of the Staff, a general or lieutenant- general, has under him the three branches of the staff, viz., the Quartermaster-General’s Department, the Adjutant- General’s Department, and the Railway Department. The duties of the Quartermaster-General and Adjutant-General are practically the same as is described for an army on pp. 27-28. The latter has under his orders the Judge- Advocate-General, the Commandant at Headquarters, and a printing office, &c. At the head of the Railway Depart- ment is a general officer, who exercises supreme control of the railways in the theatre of war, distributes rolling stock and railway personnel, orders repairs and new construction, and allots the lines to the armies. In the last-mentioned matter he submits his proposals, through the Quartermaster- General, to the Chief of the Staff. Nothing is laid down as to the number of armies which would be placed under a commander-in-chief. The number would, however, probably not exceed three or at most four. Assuming that there are three armies under the Com- mander-in-Chief, the total strength of the staff is 56 officers, 27 officials, 308 N.C.Os. and men, 139 horses, 61 carriages. Armies.—The army in the field is divided into a number of armies under commanders of armies.* Directly under the Chief of the Staff of an army are the three departments of the— (a) Quartermaster-General. (6) Adjutant-General. (c) General of Communications. * The direction of a Russian army in the field is at present governed by regulations issued in 1890 (Polojenie о polevom upravlenii voisk). These regu- lations were not however strictly followed in the campaign of 1904-5, and a committee has been sitting since 1912 with a view to their revision.
26 And directly under the Commander of the Army are the departments of the— (tZ) Intendant. (e) Inspector of Artillery. (/) Inspector of Engineers. (g) Chief Field Paymaster, and (Л) Chief Field Controller. The above eight are the principal departments, but there are also the following secondary departments and officers or officials:— Under the Chief of the Staff:— The Chancery of the Staff. Under the Adjutant-General* :— The Field Hospital Department. The Field Medical Department. The Plenipotentiary of the Red Cross Society. The Judge Advocate-General. The Commandant at Headquarters. The Chaplain-General at Headquarters. Under the General of Communications :— The Lines of Communication Department. The Road Department. The Postal and Telegraph Department. The Transport Departmen t. In European Russia the personnel of the staff of an army is fur- nished by the staff of the military district of the Empire in which the army is formed, the Commander, Chief of Staff, Commanders of the Artillery and Engineers, Chief Intendant, &c., taking over the same functions in the field army, and their assistants taking their places in the peace districts. But this does not apply to a remote theatre of war, such as Manchuria or Turkistan. The Commander of an army has supreme command not only of the troops composing his army but also of such districts and govern- ments of the Empire as may be specially placed under him. He is directly responsible to the Commander-in-Chief, and receives his orders and directions from the latter through the Chief of the Staff. Very extensive powers are given to him in respect to rewards, punish- ments, Ac. The Chief of the Staff, a lieutenant-general or general, is the chief confidential adviser of the Army Commander, is made acquainted with * But see footnote page 104 with reference to the Director of Medical Services.
27 all his plans, and in. case of death or illness takes his place, even though generals senior to him are serving in the army, until the Imperial pleasure is known. He has to collect all the information required to arrive at an exact appreciation of the military and admin- istrative situation, to learn the ideas of the Army Commander as to the general manner in which affairs should be conducted, to take the measures necessary for carrying those ideas into execution, to subdivide business among the branches, and to ensure its punctual execution. He also supervises the work of other branches not directly under him, so that matters may go smoothly. The Chief of the Staff is present at all official interviews between the Commander and the heads of departments. The points on which he must possess information are divided into two categories. In the first, i.e., those on which he must have detailed information, are included—(1) effec- tives of men and horses; (2) stations and movements of units; (3) state of the transport; (4) geography of the theatre of war, and maps ; (5) strength, positions and movements of the enemy ; (6) posi- tions and movements of other armies or allied troops; (7) number of sick; (8) position of medical establishments; (9) means of transport for the sick; (10) state of the lines of communication ; (11) means of transport on those lines; and (12) strength of the reserve of horses. To the second category belongs information which need bo general only, viz.: as to the distribution and resources of the supply magazines and artillery and engineer parks, the state of the arms and ammuni- tion in possession of the troops, and the condition and armament of the fortresses. The Quartermaster-General, a major-general of the General Staff, is the immediate assistant of the Chief of the Staff in all questions relating to operations. He takes the place of the latter in case of death or illness, and is the immediate superior of all officers of the General Staff or Corps of Topographers employed with the army staff. The department is divided into 4 sections, namely, operations, records, reconnaissance, and topography, in charge of each of which is a field officer of the General Staff, with another officer of the same as his assistant. In the operations section are worked out all matters concerning the operations and distribution of the troops, the issue of countersign and parole, and communications with co-operating or allied armies. The records section conducts correspondence relating to the personnel, services, and employment of all the General Staff Officers with the army, draws up reports upon actions or operations, and keeps the staff diary. The reconnaissance section collects all information as to the enemy and the theatre of war, provides spies and guides, and supervises war correspondence. The topographical section collects topographical details, directs topographical work, and issues maps to the troops. The Adjutant-General, a major-general, is the immediate assistant of the Chief of the Staff in all matters concerning the personnel and organization of the army. He is also chief of the sanitary service, and has at his disposal all the resources of the medical establishments.* * See pages 104-106
28 His staff is divided between the Adjutant-Genoral’s office and the Medical Chancery. The former is divided into 3*sections—inspection, administration and rewards. In the inspection section are worked out all matters relating to the personnel of the troops, casualties, transfers and appointments, pay, matters concerning the Commandant at Headquarters and the Chaplain-General, military police, army orders not concerning matters dealt with by the Quartermaster- General’s department, and reports. The administration section attends to the supply of material, horses, and ammunition, the disposal of captured material, &c., and complaints. The rewards section attends to all recommendations for honours and rewards. The Commandant at Headquarters, a major-general, assists the inspector of hospitals in establishing dressing stations, and in arranging for the transport of the wounded. In other respects his duties are similar to those of the Commandant at Headquarters of an army corps. The General of Communications of the Army, a major-general, superintends all matters concerning the establishment and working of the lines of communication of the army. The station commandants and the lines of communication troops are under him. He also takes up the civil administrations of occupied portions of the enemy’s territory. He has under him the following Departments :— (a) The Lines of Communication Department; (b) The Road Department, which deals with the material organization, construction and repair of those lines of road, rail, river or canal, which form the communications of the army. It has at its head a major-general, and is divided into 8 sections (working, technical and accounts); (c) The Postal and Telegraph Department; (d) The Transport Department, with a major-general at its head, whose duties are to distribute the convoys on the lines of communication and to supervise their personnel and duties. At the head of the Artillery Department is the Inspector of Artillery of the Army, a lieutenant-general, who is the adviser and assistant of the Commander of the Army in all matters concerning his arm. In action he may be called upon to take command of masses of guns. He is entrusted with the supply of ammunition, arms, and artillery material, and has under his orders all artillery dep6ts and technical establishments. At the head of the Engineer Department is the Inspector of Engineers of the Army, a lieutenant-general, whose authority extends over the engineer troops, staff, establishments, and depots placed under the Commander of the Army. He arranges for the supply of engineer stores to the troops and fortresses, and directs all en- gineering operations in the theatre of war. He commands all engineer troops not attached to army corps, divisions, &c.
29 > The duties of the Intendant, the Chief Paymaster, and the Chief Controller require no explanation. The working of the Field Hospital, Field Medical and Veterinary Departments is explained in Chapter IX. For the establishment of the staff of an army see Appendix X. The composition and strength of an army in war must obviously depend upon local circumstances, and nothing can be laid down upon the subject, but for a campaign against a great military power a strength of about 5 army corps per army, in addition to a proportion of troops not included in army corps, and the necessary line of communications troops, appears to be accepted. The following may be taken as the normal composition of an army in the field :— 3-5 Army Corps. 1-2 Cavalry Corps. 1 Division Heavy Artillery (3 batteries). 1 Wireless telegraph company. 1 Squadron Field gendarmerie. Parks, trains, hospitals, &c. liemount depdt. Pontoon battalions, siege parks, or other special technical units may be added in certain cases. The organization of the air services for an army is not definitely known. A detachment of aeroplanes and possibly an Air Company will form part of an army in the field. Army Corps.—An army corps is commanded by a general or lieutenant-general, who has 2 aides-de-camp. The Chief of the Staff is a major-general or colonel, who has under his orders 2 senior adjutants (1 of them a General Staff officer), 1 field and two other officers of the General Staff for special duties, an officer of the corps of topo- graphers, and an officer in charge of the whole baggage of the corps staff, besides 8 clerks and 2 lithographers. No exact distribution of duties among the various officers of the corps staff is laid down, but the general duties of the Chief of the Staff are to work out the details of (D personnel of men and horses ; (2) distribution of all units, issue ot orders; (3) supply of ammu- nition ; (4) number of days’ ration ; (5) state of the transport; (6) topographical details and maps; (7) news of the enemy; (8) operations of co-operating bodies of troops ; (9) connection with the lines of communication; and (10) the numbers of sick, and also to have general information upon (a) distribution and condition of the medical establishments of the corps; (A) means of transport for sick and wounded; (c) distribution and contents of the depots of supplies under the Corps Intendant; and (d) distribution and contents of the artillery parks belonging to the corps. Directly under the Chief of the Staff of an army corps are the Corps Engineer, the Commandant at Headquarters, and the corps staff escort.
30 The commander of the sapper battalion of the corps should become, when his battalion is broken up into companies upon mobilization, the Corps Engineer, and command all the engineer units attached to the army corps.* Ho superintends all engineering work and the supply of entrenching tools, and has an engineer officer at his disposal. The Commandant at Headquarters has general charge of all the police duties of the corps, and under him are placed the gendarmerie and the baggage of the corps staff. He sees to the cleanliness of the camps, the posting of guards for and the billeting of the corps staff, controls sutlers and private carriages, takes precautions against spies, finds guides, and collects stragglers. The Inspector of the Artillery of an army corps, a lieutenant- general, is directly under the Corps Commander for discipline, &c., but in technical matters is under the Inspector of Artillery of the Army. Under his direct orders are all the units of the artillery nob allotted to divisions, and all the artillery parks of the corps. The artillery units placed under the orders of divisional commanders are subordinated to him in technical matters only. In action he takes command of all batteries massed for a specific purpose by order of the Corps Commander, and is at all times responsible for the supply of ammunition. He renders returns to the Chief of the Staff as to the expenditure of ammunition and losses in artillery personnel and horses. He has a staff of two adjutants. The Corps Intendant, who is either a military officer or an official, has, in general, charge of the supply to the trooops and departments of the army corps of food, clothing, and cash. Under him are the divisional intendants, and the supply and store magazines and dep6ts which may be placed at his disposal by the Army Intendant or the Intendant of Line of Communications. The duties of the Corps Surgeon, Corps Veterinary Surgeon, Corps Controller, and Corps Paymaster require no explanation. To each corps is attached a permanent court-martial composed of 1 major-general or colonel as president, 2 field officers as temporary members, 1 secretary (official), 1 officer candidate, and 1 clerk. To the court is attached a procurator’s branch, composed of 1 colonel as military procurator and 1 officer candidate. The escort of the corps staff consists of half an independent squadron of Don Cossacks of 2nd or 3rd Category, numbering 1 officer, 3 senior and 3 junior under officers, 1 trumpeter, 1 lance- corporal, 60 Cossacks and 68 horses. The transport, including the treasury, consists of 16 1-horse carts, 24 2-horsa wagons, and 1 cooking cart, with 1 N.C.O. and 37 drivers. The telephone stores approved for an army corps staff include the material for 5 stations, and 15 versts (10 miles) of wire. They are carried in two 2-horse 2-wheeled carts. The strength and composition of an army corps staff is given in Appendix X. * See page 78.
31 The strength and composition of an army corps varies as shown in Appendix I. Its normal composition is 2 infantry divisions (with their artillery), 1 cavalry division, 1 division of howitzers, 1 sappei' battalion and the necessary adminis- trative troops. Of the European and Caucasian troops, the Guard, III, VIII, XII and I and II Caucasian corps have in addition a rifle brigade. The XIV corps is composed of 1 infantry division and 2 rifle brigades, the XXII of 3 rifle brigades. The XVI and XVIII corps have 3 infantry divisions. The Guard, XIV, XV, XIX, and II Caucasian corps have 2 cavalry divisions each. The V, XIII, XX, and XXIII have a brigade of cavalry only. The VII, XXII, and XXIV have a varying number of squadrons less than a brigade, while the I, IV, XVII, XVIII, XXI, and XXV corps have no cavalry at all beyond the Cossack escorts of corps and divisional staffs.* It is probable that certain of the cavalry divisions would be formed into cavalry corps and become independent upon the commencement of operations. Some corps have, in peace, heavy artillery divisions, pontoon battalions, wireless telegraph and air companies. These would form Army troops in war. Asiatic corps have a special composition. The two Turkis- tan corps have 3 and 2 rifle brigades respectively. Siberian corps have 2 rifle divisions. All these corps are weak in cavalry. The Russian army corps formed in the war of 1904-5 varied very considerably in composition, and were frequently split up for some temporary purpose. Lately the tendency as regards European corps has been to re-group them with a view to uniformity. The war establishment of a normal army corps in European Russia is given in Appendix X. It may be taken roughly as 46,000 of all arms, and its fighting strength as 28,000 rifles, 3,500 sabres, and 120 guns. That of corps differing from the normal can be calculated from the estab- lishments of the units composing them. Cavalry corps.—Cavalry corps are not maintained in peace, and their strength and composition in war is not laid down. It may be assumed to be 2 cavalry divisions with a staff and a cavalry corps supply column.t * Divisional cavalry may be furnished in war by 2nd line category Cossacks. t See pages 115, 291.
32 Infantry Divisions.—An infantry division is commanded by a lieutenant-general, who has a staff of 1 colonel as chief of the staff, and 2 senior adjutants, one an officer of the General Staff. The remaining officials of the staff are the Divisional Intendant and his assistant and the Divisional Surgeon. The duties of the staff of the division are parallel to those of the staff of an army corps. To each divisional staff is attached an escort detailed from one of the independent Don Cossack squadrons, of 2nd or 3rd Category, and consisting of 1 officer, 2 under-officers, 20 Cossacks, and 22 horses. From this the escort for the baggage column is detailed. The baggage, &c., of the divisional staff is carried in 1 two- horsed wagon and 5 one-horsed carts, with 6 drivers and 9 (1 spare) horses. The telephone stores approved for the staff of a division include 19 versts (12§ miles) of wire and 9 stations complete, carried in 2 two-horsed carts. If the division be not included in an army corps, its staff is increased by an engineer officer, a divisional controller, and 5 non-combatants. The staff of a Siberian rifle division differs slightly from the above. A Veterinary Officer takes the place of the Intendant, there is no Cossack escort, and the transport consists of 11 two-wheeled carts. The war establishment of infantry divisions of the active army is given in Appendix X. It may be taken roughly as 20,000 of all arms, and its fighting strength as 14,000 rifles and 48 guns. Cavalry Divisions.—A cavalry division is commanded by a lieutenant-general. His staff includes 1 colonel as chief and two senior adjutants, one a General Staff officer, 3 officials (i.e. divisional intendant and assistant, and divisional surgeon), and a Cossack escort of 1 officer and 22 N.C.Os. and men. The transport consists of 1 uryadnik in charge, 8 (6 in Cossack divisions) drivers, 7 one-horse (5 in Cossack divisions) and 1 two-horse carriages, 10 draught horses (8 in Cossack divisions), and 22 horses of the Cossack escort. If the division be not included in an army corps, its staff is increased by a divisional controller, with 3 non- combatants.
33 The composition of cavalry divisions varies. The com- position and war establishment of the usual type are given in Appendix X. Its strength may be taken roughly as 4,500 of all arms, and its fighting strength as 3,500 sabres and 12 guns. Infantry Brigades.—An infantry brigade consists of a staff and two regiments. In both peace and war the sphere of action of the brigade commander is limited, and as a rule the divisional commander deals with regiments, &c., direct. In the field, the brigade commander is frequently detailed to command a zone of the fighting line, or a detachment. The staff of an infantry brigade consists of a major- general (lieutenant-general in the Guard) commanding, with a war staff of 1 brigade adjutant, 1 driver, and 1 clerk, whose baggage is carried in a one-horse cart and on a pack- horse. In peace time the brigade commander has no staff. The war establishment of a brigade is about 8,000 of all arms (7,000 rifles). The staff of a rifle brigade consists of 1 major-general commanding, 2 General Staff officers (a colonel and a captain),* 1 surgeon, and 12 N.C.Os. and men, with 2 two- horse wagons, 2 drivers and 4 horses. For war establish- ment of a rifle brigade, see Appendix X. Cavalry Brigades.—A cavalry brigade is commanded by a major-general and has a staff of the same strength as that of an infantry brigade.! It consists of two regiments, either both regular, or one regular and one Cossack, or both Cossack. The establishments of brigades of each type are given in Appendix X. Cavalry brigades have practically the same establishment in peace and war. * Rifle brigades in war will probably also include a Brigade adjutant, in charge of administrative services, an officer in charge of communications and another for special service. t The staff of an independent brigade has 1 officer and 3 non-combatants additional, as well as 3 more carts, drivers, and horses. (B 10626) C
34 II.—Reserve Troops. On mobilization 38 reserve divisions will probably be formed from surplus reservists as follows :— 8 in St. Petersburg district. 6 „ Kiev district. 2 „ Odessa district. 10 „ Moscow district. 5 „ Kazan district. 1 „ Caucasus district. 1 „ Omsk district. 2 „ Irkutsk district. 3 „ Amur district. The composition of these divisions will be similar to that of regular divisions. They would be used for internal defence. There is no lack of trained men, but serious difficulty would be experienced in finding a sufficiency of officers, non-commissioned officers, and in supplying these units with medical and other administrative services. Difficulty will be experienced in the formation of reserve artillery units. It is doubtful if there are sufficient guns ; there will be no officers available, as active batteries are short of their proper complement; all horses will have to be pur- chased and trained. There would also be some delay in horsing and equipping the Cossacks of the 3rd Category. Those regular units, in connection with which reserve units will be formed on mobilization, have an increased establishment of officers and, it is believed, of re-engaged N.C.Os., to assist in their formation. Ill, IV, V.—Dep6t, Fortress, and Local Troops. The organization of the Depot and Fortress troops is given in Chapters IV to VII. The organization of the Local troops is described in Chapter IV.
35 VI.—The Imperial Militia. The Opolchenie, or Militia, forms the third line of defence, and it is stated that provision has been made for the forma- tion of the following units :— Field Troops— Infantry, 640 battalions. Cavalry, 80 squadrons. Artillery, 80 batteries. Fortress troops— Infantry, 40 battalions. Artillery, 10 battalions. Sappers, 5 battalions. The 640 battalions are formed in brigades (not regiments) of 8 battalions, and divisions of 16 battalions, or 40 divisions in all. The 80 squadrons form 20 regiments, of 4 squadrons, and 1 regiment is attached to each of 20 divi- sions. The 80 batteries form 40 regiments of 2 batteries each, or 1 regiment per division. As their designation implies, the remaining troops will be employed for the defence of fortresses only. There are over 1,000,000 men in the Opolchenie who have received some military training,* but the difficulties attending a general mobilization of the reserve divisions which have been referred to above apply with increased force to the Opolchenie, and although it would no doubt be useful for home defence, no great military value would attach to it except after a prolonged period of embodiment. Estimated fully mobilized strength.—The following is an estimate of the total number of trained men in Russia :— The estimated number of fully trained men in the Opolchenie is about 670,500. These are men who have passed through the standing army and deserve, and are 38 to 43 years of age. (в 10626) c 2
36 Total 5,962,396 Organization of the Lines of Communication in War. The duties of the Chief of the Railway Department of the Staff of the Commander-in-Chief have been described on page 25. Under his directions in so far as concerns railway matters only are the Generals of communications (nachalnik voennikh soobshchenii) of the armies, who are dealt with on pages 26-28. It remains to describe the organization of the lines of communica- tions themselves. They are divided into stations (etapi). On road lines these are at most *25 versts (16j miles) apart; on railway lines, at all important junctions, and at entraining and detraining stations, and also so that troops travelling may always be supplied with a hot meal every 24 hours ; on water lines, at embarking.and disembarking points only. They are classed as initial stations (nachalni etap), terminal stations (golovnoi etap), collecting stations (sborni etap), or intermediate stations (joromejutochni etap). Initial stations are at the * Included in this figure are 670,451 of the Opolchenie, i.e., fully trained men who have passed through the standing army and the reserve. The remainder are surplus reservists. Other men in the Opolchenie who have passed direct to the 1st Category, and the 2nd Category of the Opolchenie, are not included.
To fa^page Diagram showing lines of Communication of an Army. Area of Operations. Area under Military Governor-General. Home Territory. A Hi. l
37 commencement of a line of communications, terminal stations are the advanced bases which move forward behind the army, collecting stations are formed to regulate movement on long lines of communica- tion, and intermediate stations are points for the rest and supply of troops and convoys. At each station is a field officer as commandant (etapni komendant). Staffs are provided according to the importance of the station, stations being divided into three classes. Lines of road are divided into sections, each under a Road Commandant (nachalnik etapnavo uchastka), a major-general, who is the superior officer of the Station Commandants. Governors may be appointed for the temporary civil administration of occupied hostile territory, and are under the Chief of the Lines of Communication Department. Lines of Communication troops are furnished by reserve or militia units. Movement of troops by rail:—A Russian troop train consists of about 35 4-wheeled wagons. The following table gives the approximate number of trains required for various units :— Infantry regiment ...................................... 6 Cavalry „ 5 Field or Horse battery ................................. 2 Artillery brigade (48 guns)............................. 9 Howitzer division ...................................... 3 Artillery park.......................................... 2 Artillery park brigade ................................. 7 Sapper battalion (with section of Field park) .......... 5 Pontoon company ........................................ 3 Railway battalion ...................................... 2 Transport battalion..................................... 3 Wireless company ....................................... 1 Mobile field hospital................................... 1 Cavalry corps supply column ............................ 6 Thus an Infantry Division would require 48 trains, as follows:— Staff Divisional baggage and sanitary division 4 regiments infantry Artillery brigade „ park brigade 3 5 ... 24 9 7 48
38 A Cavalry Division requires 24 trains:— Staff and transport 4 regiments (24 squadrons) 2 Horse Artillery batteries 1 ... 20 3 24 An Army Corps (less cavalry division) requires about 114 trains:— Staff ' 2 Infantry Divisions 1 Sapper battalion (with section of Field park)... Howitzer Division Corps Supply Column 2 ... 96 5 3 8 114
39 CHAPTER IV. INFANTRY. General organization.—The infantry consists of (a) Guard, Grenadier and Line regiments, (6) Rifle regiments, (c) Kuban (Jossack Plastun battalions, and (c?) Local infantry detach- ments. In war there are formed in addition dep6t (zapasni) battalions,and battalions of the Opolchenie or Imperial Militia. (a) Guard, Grenadier and Line Regiments. There are 236 regiments in all, viz.:— J 2 Guard regiments. 16 Grenadier regiments. 208 Line (Аттегекг) regiments. The 12 regiments of Guards are distinguished by titles only, e.g., “ The Preobrajenski Regiment of Guards.” The Grenadier regiments are numbered from 1 to 16 and the Line regiments from 1 to 208, each regiment bearing the name of some city, province, or river of the Empire, and many bearing, in addition, the name of their honorary colonel, thus, “ 82nd Daghestanski (Grand Duke Nikolai Mikhailo- vich’s) Infantry Regiment.” A regiment consists of 4 battalions of 4 companies each and a non-combatant company, 17 companies in all. The battalions in a regiment are numbered from 1 to 4, the companies being numbered in regular sequence through the regiment from 1 to 16. The non-combatant company bears no number. The regiments are organized permanently in divisions of two brigades of two regiments, the regiments and divisions being numbered in regular sequence through- out the army. Thus, the 16th Infantry Division comprises
40 the 61st, 62nd, 63rd, and 64th Regiments. Regiments are commanded by colonels, battalions by colonels or lieutenant- colonels, and companies by captains. Company commanders are not mounted. They are, however, encouraged to ride at manoeuvres and on service, mounting themselves at their own expense. Peace and war establishments.—The approximate peace and war establishments are given in Appendix X. Roughly a company in peace consists of 100 men, and in war of about 240, and has 3 or 4 officers in peace and war. A battalion consists of about 450 men in peace and 1,000 in war. A regiment in peace is about 1,900 strong, and its war strength is 79 officers, 7 officials, and about 4,000 men (3,500 rifles). In peace, however, certain divisions on the German and Austrian frontiers, on the Black Sea coast, on the Turkish Asiatic frontier and in Siberia have an increased effective approximating closely to the war establishment. The following special detachments form part of each infantry regiment:— (a) The machine-gun detachment. (6) The communication detachment. (c) The scout detachment. Machine-?un detachment.—The detachment is organized as a company and is divided into sections each of 2 guns. It has 8 guns in war, but at present only 2 or 4 in peace. Three to six men per company are picked annually from the last joined contingent and specially trained. Officers and N.C.Os. are trained with an instructional machine-gun detachment. All machine-gun detachments attend annual practice camps which last for 15 days. The detachment is commanded by a captain with subalterns for two of the 4 sections. The remaining sections are commanded by N.C.Os. Each gun has a detachment of 1 N.C.O., 7 men and 2 drivers. The war establishment consists of 3 officers, 102 N.C.Os. and men, 70 horses and 24 vehicles (see Appendix X). Armament.—The gun is of Maxim automatic pattern and takes the rifle ammunition. The muzzle velocity is 2,854 f.s. and the sights are graduated up to 2,084 yards. Several types of carriage for the gun are in use at present, but the type which will probably eventually be used by all units is the
41 Sokolov equipment, iu which the gun on a low wheeled platform is parried in a cart drawn by 2 horses. The platform has 2 wheels, 12} inches in diameter, and when taken out of the cart can be dragged along on these either by a horse or 2 mon. When preparing to fire, 2 folding legs are unstrapped from the trail and form with the latter a tripod stand. The gun can also be tired as it stands, without using the legs. The gnu is provided with a shield, 15} inches high by 21 inches wide. The weight of the gun without the shield is 97J lbs., of the shield 16 lbs. It can be rapidly adapted for pack transport in case the cart is unable to proceed further. The other mountings in use are the “ Vickers 1910,” which is only slightly different from the Sokolov equipment, and the tripod mount- ing of 1904 (without wheels). Equipment.—The men of the machine-gun detachment carry carbines slung on their backs instead of rifles, and a kinjal (curved dagger) instead of a bayonet. One bandolier is worn and 3 infantry ammuni- tion belt-pouches. The Zeiss range-finder has been adopted for use with machine-gun detachments. Uni form.—Men of machine-gun detachments wear crimson braid on the cuffs of their F. S. dress (see Plate 6). Tools.—See Appendix IX for tools carried by a machine-gun detachment. Ammunition.—The cart on which the machine-gun is carried has at the rear 2 lockers, each containing a metal cylinder holding 4 belts of 250 rounds each. These cylinders are taken out when the gun is taken off the cart and can be dragged or rolled along the ground by means of ropes attached to handles at each end of the cylinder. Additional belts can be caried in the body of the cart. The ammuni- tion carts carry each 18,000 rounds (40 belts of 450 each).* Communication detachment. +—This consists of the mounted orderlies (1 N.C.O. and 12 men), 4 signallers, and 21 telephonists (including 1 N.C.O.). It is commanded by an officer, who is mounted, and has two 2-horse carts for the material. The telephone equipment consists of 9 instruments, 1 central exchange for 6 lines and 10 versts (6f miles) of wire carried on drums of 1 verst (1,200 yards) each.| In each company 8 men are trained as signallers. Two men per regiment are trained as cyclists. In war these cyclists are formed into detachments for communication between units and the brigade and divisional staff. ♦ Or 72 belts of 250 rounds each. t See also pages 82-83. t In addition, regiments usually have a good deal of extra telephone and signalling equipment, purchased privately, and the establishment given above is often exceeded, the use of telephones being very extended in the Russian army. It may in fact be taken that the actual strength of the communication detachment is usually 50-60 men.
42 Scout detachment.—Four men per company are trained as scouts, and they are usually grouped under command of an officer and used as a separate body for reconnoitring. They are specially selected particularly for their physical qualities. In Manchuria in 1904-5 the scout detachment was employed for any particularly hazardous operation, and several scout detachments were often grouped together for a particular purpose. Four cyclists are included in the scout detachment. Infantry scouts wear green braid on the cuffs of their F.S. dress (see Plate 6). Regimental transport.—Each company has a 1-horse ammunition cart, 1 two-horse baggage wagon, 1 one-horse cart for stores, and 1 field kitchen (two-horse). On each ammunition cart are carried 20 zinc boxes, each with 300 rounds ammunition, or 6,000 rounds. The transport of a battalion staff consists of 1 one-horse cart for officers’ baggage, 1 one-horse medical store cart, and 1 four-horse ambulance wagon. The transport of an infantry regiment is divided into two lines, and is composed as follows :—* 1^ Line— Carriages. Horses. 1st echelon of company ammunition carts 8 8 Medical store carts ... 4 4 Wagon, with stretchers, &c. 1 2 Ambulance wagons ... 4 16 Officers’ baggage (1 cart per battalion) ... 4 4 „ „ (regimental staff) 1 2 Cooking carts (1 per company) ... ... 17 34 Telephone carts 2 2 Spare horses ... — 7 Totals ... 41 79 2nd Line— Carriages. Horses. 2nd echelon of company ammunition carts 8 8 Regimental ammunition carts 8 16 Company baggage wagons ... ... 16 32 „ „ carts ... 16 16 Regimental baggage wagons ... 5 10 н M cart 1 1 Spare horses ... 8 Totals 54 91 Grand totals ... 95 170 In command of the transport is an officer with 1 sergt.-major and 5 N.C.Os. All these are mounted. * Not including the transport of the machine-gun detachment.
43 Arms and equipment.— Officers—Officers of all arms carry a heavy curved sword (shashka) and revolver. The new field service equipment for officers (introduced in 1912) is similar to our Sam Browne belt. It consists of a belt with two slings, sword frog, revolver holster, field glass case, case for whistle and haversack, all of brown leather. The revolver is worn on the left side, the field glasses and haversack may be worn right or left as preferred. Officials, sub-ensigns, sergeant-majors, regimental buglers, mounted orderlies, and transport under-officers are also armed with swords and revolvers. The revolver is of 3-line calibre, with 7 chambers, of two patterns ; triple action for officers, single action for rank and file; calibref •299 inch; weight, 1*74 lbs.; charge of smokeless powder, 12*34 grains; weight of bullet, 108 grains; muzzle velocity, 902 f.s.; the point of the bullet is flattened to produce smashing effect. It is worn in a leather case on the waistbelt, and is secured by a cord passed round the neck. Officers may use Colt or Borchardt-Luger automatic pistols instead of a revolver. Six pairs of field glasses per company are carried by non- commissioned officers. Mounted orderlies carry compasses. Rank and file.—Buglers and bandsmen are armed with sword- bayonets and revolvers ; non-combatants with hatchets. Combatant non-commissioned officers and men arc armed with the “ 3-line ” rifle, 1891 pattern,* which has been resightedf and adapted for new pointed ammunition. It has a quadrangular bayonet which is always carried fixed, bayonet scabbards being left behind on service. The principal data of the rifle are as follows:— Rifle— Weight with bayonet ... Total length with bayonet ,. „ without bayonet Calibre ................... Number of grooves Twist of grooves Breech action.............. Contents of magazine ... ... 9| lbs. ... 5 ft. 8 ins. ... 4 ft. 3J ins. ... 0*299 in. ... 4. ... 1 in 31-7 cal. ... Straight bolt. ... 5 rounds. * 7 per cent, of the rifles with the troops were renewed in 1913, 13 per cent, will be renewed in 1914 and 20 per cent, in 1915, and subsequent years. The old rifles thus withdrawn may be fitted with new barrels and become available for the Opolchenie. t The resighting is unlikely to be entirely completed in all districts until the end of 1915. All units of the standing army in European Russia, how- ever, are armed with the resighted rifle.
44 Ammunition— Total weight of cartridge Material of cartridge case Powder charge............... Material of bullet (pointed) ... Weight of bullet ........... Initial velocity ... ....... Rifle sighted up to ........ ... 361 grs. ... Solid drawn brass. ... 46*5 grs. ... Lead with nickel and copper coating. ... 148 grs. ... 2,826 f.s. ... 3,000 paces. The rifle has no cut-off, but can be used as a single loader when the magazine is empty. The smokeless powder used is a pyroxylinc preparation in yellowish tablets. The supply of ammunition carried is, per regulation, as follows :*— Per Rifle. Carried by the man 120 rounds.f In the regimental S.A.A. carts 66 „ J In the artillery parks 69 In the local parks ... 164 „ Total 419 The personal equipment consists of a waistbelt of buff leather supporting a pouch for 30 rounds on each side of the clasp, and the Linnemann tool on the right side in a case, handle downwards. A bandolierS, holding 30 rounds,] is carried over the left shoulder under the rolled greatcoat, and a reserve pouch,§ holding 30 rounds, is suspended by a strap over the right shoulder and fastened to the waistbelt on the left side. Suspended over the right shoulder, and hanging in rear of the loft buttock, is a waterproof canvas kitbag, containing two shirts, one pair drawers, two pairs foot cloths, one towel, one pair mitts, 3 days’ provisions as shown on page 117, materials for cleaning the rifle, cloth for repairs, soap, housewife, and drinking cup. (The Guards have instead of this a knapsack of older pattern.) One sixth portion of a shelter tent of grey-green waterproof canvas is strapped to the left side of the kitbag. The aluminium water-bottle^f with cup, and the oval bronze mess-tin are also suspended over the right shoulder, and lie on the top of the kitbag. The greatcoat is worn rolled en bandouliere over the left shoulder, a spare pair of boots * See also page 71. t In the war of 1904-05 this number was increased to from 165 to 210 rounds when going into action in circumstances admitting of replenishment, and up to 240 rounds when replenishment was difficult. The extra rounds were carried in bandolier, pockets and kitbag. t 59*7 rounds if the N.C.O's. rifles be included. Not carried by N.C.Os. 60 rounds is its full capacity. Weight empty, 10 ozs.
45 in a bag being strapped on to it, and the hood rolled up in it. The total weight carried by the infantry soldier in marching order is about 56j lbs., including 120 rounds. The shelter tent consists of 6 sheets, 3 poles in two pieces each, 10 ropes and 8 pegs. The sheets are about 8 feet square, and the whole equipment is divided among six men. Each regiment has a colour, which is carried cased by the 1st Battalion. It is about 50 inches square, in black, white and orange, and bears the St. George’s Cross with the Imperial cypher, and the double eagle. Each regiment also has a camp colour, 50 inches x 35 inches, of the regimental colour (according to its number in its division) and with the regimental number in black. To facilitate direction, dressing, &c., each battalion and each company has a flag. Those of battalions have three horizontal stripes of black, orange, and white, with the number of the battalion on the central stripe. Those of companies are red, blue, white, and dark green, according as the regiment is the 1st, 2nd, 3rd, or 4th, of the division, and have a vertical and a horizontal stripe forming a cross in the centre. The horizontal stripe is red for the 1st, blue for the 2nd, white for the 3rd, and dark green for the 4th battalion of each regiment; the vertical stripe, red, blue, white, and dark green for the 1st, 2nd, 3rd, and 4th companies of each battalion respectively. These flags are carried on the bayonets of the markers. See Plate 12. For entrenching tools carried, see Appendix IX. i It is intended to issue searchlight projectors to all infantry regi- ments. It is not yet known what the pattern will be. Uniform.—See page 50. (6) Rifles. The rifle regiments of the Russian Army consist of— 4 Guard rifle regiments, forming the Guard Rifle Brigade. 20 rifle regiments (Nos. 1 to 20), forming in regular sequence the 1st to 5th Rifle Brigades of the Line, of 4 regiments each. 12 Finland rifle regiments (Nos. 1 to 12), forming in regular sequence the 1st to 3rd Finland Rifle Brigades. 8 Caucasian rifle regiments (Nos. 1 to 8), forming in regular sequence the 1st and 2nd Caucasian Rifle Brigades. 22 Turkistan rifle regiments (Nos. 1 to 22), forming in regular sequence the 1st to 4th Turkistan Rifle Brigades, of 4 regiments each, and the 5th and 6th Turkistan Rifle Brigades, of 3 regiments each. (N.B.—All the above regiments have 2 battalions each.)
46 44 Siberian rifle regiments (Nos. 1 to 44), of 4 battalions each, forming in regular sequence the 1st to 11th Siberian Rifle Divisions. Establishments.—The war establishment of a Siberian rifle regiment is the same as that of an infantry regiment (see Appendix X), with the exception that the system of transport is different, as there are 382 drivers and 437 horses (including 43 spare). In the Irkutsk and Pri-Amur districts Siberian rifle regiments have mounted scout detachments. The peace establishment is much higher and approximates closely to the war establishment. The peace and war establishments of companies in 2-battalion rifle regiments in Europe are the same as those of infantry regiments. Each regiment has a detachment of 6 mounted orderlies (1 N.C.O. and 5 men). A machine-gun detachment of 8 guns forms part of each regiment. It is believed that rifle regiments have at present only pack equipment for machine guns. Four men per company are trained as scouts.* The communication detachment is similar to that of an infantry regiment but of half the strength. Finland rifle regiments have 6 cyclists per regiment, who are armed with revolvers. The war establishment of a 2-battalion rifle regiment is given in Appendix X. Transport.—The following is the transport for a rifle regiment of 2 battalions in Europe:— Carriages. Horses; 1st Line—• 1st echelon of company ammunition carts 4 4 Medical store carts 2 2 1-horse cart with stretchers 1 1 Ambulance wagons 2 8 Baggage of regimental staff 1 2 „ battalion officers... 2 2 Cooking carts 9 18 Riding horses ... ... 1 Spare horses ... ... — 4 Totals ... 21 42 ♦ In Turkistan rifle regiments the scouts are mounted, and are increased to 5 per company. They are foimed in a detachment commanded by an officer.
47 2nd Line— Carriages. Horses. 2nd echelon of company ammunition carts 4 4 Regimental ammunition carts ........... 4 8 Company baggage wagons ................ 8 16 Regimental baggage wagons ............. 2 4 Company baggage carts.................. 9 9 Telephone cart ........................ 1 1 Riding horses ......................... — 3 Spare horses........................... — 4 Totals................. 28 49 Grand totals .......... 49 91 For a Siberian rifle regiment and Turkistan rifle regiment the transport consists of the following 2-wheeled carts, all drawn by 1 horse, except the field kitchens, which have 2 horses. Siberian rifle regt. Turkistan rifle regt. (2 bns.). Company S.A.A. carts 32 16 Battalion „ „ 16 8 Medical carts 4 2 Ambulance carts 16 8 Carts for sanitary material... 4 2 Field kitchens 17 9 Telephone carts 2 1 Company baggage carts 48 24 Officers’ „ „ 10 8 Regimental „ „ 15 6 Carts for entrenching tools ... 8 4 Company carts 17 9 Supply carts 176 — 365 97 Uniform and equipment.—See pages 43, 50-51 and Appendix VI. (c) Cossack Infantry. Organization.—The Kuban Cossack voinlco furnishes 18 battalions of infantry (termed plastun battalions), numbered from 1 to 18, of which only Nos. 1 to 6 are maintained in peace, Nos. 7 to 12 being of the 2nd, and Nos. 13 to 18 of the 3rd Category. The 6 battalions maintained in peace form the Kuban Plastun Brigade, which belongs to the 1st Caucasian Army Corps.
48 Uniform and equipment.—The uniform is the same as for the Kuban cavalry regiments (see page 58), with the battalion number in dark blue on the shoulder-straps, and black tops to their sheep-skin caps. The armament and equipment are as for other infantry. (d) Local Infantry. Organization.—The local infantry is, as its name implies, intended for local duties only, such as the guarding of factories and magazines, and in chief towns of recruiting circles, where there is no garrison. It is organized in small detachments, varying in strength from 48 men to 3 officers and 511 men. There are 107 such detachments of regular and 20 of Cossack troops. They have the same establishment in peace as in war. The “ escorts ” (konvoiniya komandi) are maintained for the guarding and escort of prisoners and convicts. There are in all 530 escorts (503 in Europe, 27 in Asia), with a total strength of 11,738 men. The local infantry and escorts are organized for administration into local brigades, of which there are 22. Uniform and equipment.—As for infantry, but the men have only one ammunition pouch. The initial letter of the locality followed by M (Myestni = local) is stencilled in yellow on the shoulder-straps (see Appendix VI). No transport is provided in peace or war. Depot Infantry. Formation and organization.—A dep6t battalion is formed on mobilization for each infantry or rifle regiment with the object of preparing drafts to make good the wastage in war of the active units at the front. The battalions are formed at previously designated points, generally in the territorial district of the corresponding active regiment. Those of each army corps are grouped in a brigade, called “ The Infantry Dep6t Brigade of the . . . Army Corps.” A Commander for each brigade is nominated in time of peace and prepares the plans for the formation of his brigade. His staff is formed on the issue of the order to mobilize. The staff consists of two combatant staff officers, a medical officer and 10 non-combatant rank and file.
49 A battalion consists of 4 companies, each 250 strong. In special circumstances the number of companies may be increased up to a maximum of 8. Vacancies created by wastage in a regiment at the front are filled on the requisition of the headquarter staff in the field by the despatch of “ marching companies ” (marsheviya- roti), 250 strong, from the most conveniently situated depot battalion, but preferably from the depot battalion of the regiment to be reinforced. Establishments.—A battalion consists of a permanent instructional cadre and a varying effective of men called up for training. The establishment of a 4-company battalion is given in Appendix X. The officers and N.C.Os. of the permanent cadre are detailed from the corresponding line regiment. The officials and rank and file of the permanent cadre are reservists whose names are enrolled on a special list in peace time. The varying effective is obtained from ensigns of the reserve and reservists of the regimental territorial district. Uniform and equipment.—As fur the corresponding units of the active army. Complete war equipment is held ready in peace. Imperial Militia Infantry (Opolchenie). Organization.—It is stated that provision has been made for the organization of 640 battalions (drujini) of militia infantry, which will not be formed in regiments, but in brigades of 8 battalions and divisions of 2 brigades, and that these will be called out in two categories, 320 battalions (20 divisions) in each. Forty battalions of fortress militia infantry, 20 of each category, will also be called out. No cadres are maintained in time of peace, but from 1 to 3 re- engaged non-commissioned officers, detached from the active army, are attached to each circle commandant’s staff to look after the mobilization equipment. Strengths.—Each drujina is composed of 14 officers, 3 officials, 957 combatant and 26 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men, with 32 transport horses, 10 horses for men of the battalion to be employed as mounted orderlies, and 16 carriages. (B 10626) D
50 Uniform, armament, and equipment.—The uniform will vary in colour according to the u Government ” in which the battalions are formed, the only regulation being that all the men of a battalion must be uniformly clothed, and that red shoulder-straps are to be worn. The clothing will probably be the national long-skirted coat, wide trousers, long boots, and peaked cap with the Militia cross in front. It is intended that the various ranks should be armed as in the regular infantry, but at present Berdan rifles and Smith and Wesson revolvers are substituted for the small-bore weapons.* Mounted orderlies have cavalry swords and revolvers. Men armed with rifles carry 84 rounds; with revolvers, 18. Government supplies for each man a cap badge, a waistbelt, 2 pouches for 30 rounds each, arms, and ammunition, also drums and bugles, and for each battalion 32 shovels, 16 axes, 6 pickaxes, 6 mattocks, 320 Linnemann spades, and 80 small axes. All the rest of the clothing and equipment is found by the communes. Transport.—The transport for each battalion consists of 16 2-horse wagons, 1 for office, &c., 1 for staff baggage, 2 for ammunition, 1 for artificers’, &c., tools, 1 for medical stores, 6 for supplies, and 4 for company baggage. GENERAL NOTE ON UNIFORM. The Russian army adopted in 1913 a universal field service dress of grey-green or protective (zashchitnaya) colour, which is worn on all occasions. On ceremonial occa- sions a coloured plastron (latskan) is added to the F.S. blouse and coloured stripes to the trousers, and a fur cap is worn instead of the F.S. cap. The Guard, cavalry, Cossack and horse artillery units, however, still retain their separate full dress uniform in addition to the F.S. uniform. In this handbook descriptions of uniform will be confined to the field service dress. The principle followed will be to describe in this chapter those parts of the uniform which are common to all branches of the service and to note any particulai' differences in the chapter dealing with the arm concerned. The distinctive marks by which the arm and unit to which a man belongs may be recognised are given in Appendix VI These dis- tinctions are:— (a) In the Guard, the coloured piping on the collar, cuffs, and shoulder-straps. (6) In all units, except the Guard, the numerals, cyphers and badges worn on the shoulder-straps. (c) In aU units, the colour of the coloured side of the reversible shoulder-straps and of the patches on the collar of the great- coat. (d) In cavalry and Cossack units the colour of the stripe on the breeches. * See footnote, page 43.
51 All officers wear a single-breasted jacket of grey-green cloth with 5 buttons of the same colour, either of stamped leather or of metal. The jacket has two side and two outside breast pockets, and is made loose enough to allow of a thick woollen waistcoat being worn underneath it. The collar is 1| inches high and is fastened with two hooks. Officers of Guard regiments wear coloured piping on the flaps of the breast pockets and on the cuffs. Badges of rank are worn on the shoulder-straps The rank and file wear a blouse (rubakha) of similar colour. Its pattern is that of the blouse commonly worn by the Russian peasant, without pockets. The soft standing collar, If inches in height, buttons at the side over the left shoulder. Shoulder-straps worn by the rank and file are reversible, one side being coloured and the other of the same colour as the blouse. The former is worn upper- most in peace, the latter on service and on manoeuvres. On both sides (except in Guard regiments') are stencilled numbers, letters and cyphers, which provide the best means of recognising the unit to which a man belongs (see Appendix VI). In Guard regiments the grey-green side of the shoulder-straps is plain with coloured piping. The trousers are of similar colour and material to the jacket, except in the cavalry and artillery, and are cut very loose and tucked inside the long boots, which are of soft leather reaching to the knee. The forage cap is of grey-green (doth with a peak of the same colour. All officers and the rank and filo of mounted units wear a chin-strap fastening outside. The chin-strap buttons are of metal on the officers’ caps, and of grey-green leather on those of the rank and file. The national cockade of orange, black and white is worn on the cap-band by all units. The greatcoat of the rank and file is of heavy greyish-brown cloth, and reaches to half-way between knee and ankle. It fastens with buttons and hooks, is cut very loose, and is gathered in by a strap and buttons in rear at the waist. There is a patch of coloured cloth on the collar, which turns down, and the shoulder-straps are of the same colour as those on the jacket in peace. A sheepskin coat, reaching to the knees, is worn under the greatcoat in the winter. The hood (bashlik') is of camel’s hair cloth, with long ends which can be rolled round the neck. On the march, with the greatcoat in wear, the hood hangs on the man’s back, and the ends are crossed over the chest and tucked under the waist-belt. The officers’ greatcoat is of blue-grey cloth. The colours of the collar-patches on the greatcoat in the infantry run in agreement with the consecutive numbering of the regiments, in regular sequence in each division, viz., red, blue, white, dark green, according as a regiment is the first, second, third or fourth in its division. Foot cloths are worn instead of socks. Cloth mitts are worn in winter. The men are provided with flannel cholera belts. (B 10626) D 2
52 Distinctive marks of rank (common to all arms).—* Officers (see Plate 5). An officer’s rank is indicated by his shoulder-straps and the badges on them. The badges of rank are :— Sub-lieutenant...................... Two stars. Lieutenant ......................... Three stars. Staff-captain ...................... Four stars. Captain............................. No stars. For the above the shoulder-straps, which are of cloth of the same colour as the shoulder-straps of the men and stiffened inside, are covered with two strips of gold or silver lace showing a strip of the cloth in the middle and round the edges. On the shoulder-straps are borne the same number and cypher as on the men’s shoulder-straps in addition to the badges of rank. Lieutenant-colonel ... ... ... Three stars. Colonel............................. No stars. For field-officers the shoulder-straps have three strips of gold or silver lace showing two strips of cloth in the middle. Major-General ... ............. Two stars. Lieutenant-General ................. Three stars. General............................. No stars. Field-Marshal .................. Crossed batons. The shoulder-straps of general officers are of scarlet cloth completely covered, except at the edges, with gold lace. Non-commissioned officers (see Plate 6). The rank is indicated by stripes of braid or tape on the shoulder- straps, as under:— Sub-ensigns {podpraporshchiki'). a stripe of gold lace down the middle of the shoulder-strap. Sergeant-majors, a broad stripe of dark orange braid across the shoulder-strap. Senior under-officers, three . f d k tape across Junior under-officors, two f the shoulder-straps. Lance-corporals,one ) 1 Re-engaged N.C.Os. of the 2nd class wear in addition a narrow strip of dark orange braid across the upper ends of the shoulder- straps. Snort-term volunteers (see page 9) wear a twisted cord of the national colours (orange, clack, and white) round the edges of the shoulder-straps.
53 CHAPTER V. CAVALRY. Regular Cavalry. Organization.—The regular cavalry consists of :—* 4 regiments of Guard cuirassiers, of 4 squadrons each. 1 regiment of horse grenadiers (Guard), of 6 squadrons. 23 regiments of dragoons ; 1 of the Guard, 20 of the Line (Nos. 1 to 20), 1 Littoral {Primorski) Regi- ment, 1 Crimean Regiment; all of 6 squadrons each. 19 regiments of Ulans ; 2 of the Guard, 17 of the Line (Nos. 1 to 17) ; all of 6 squadrons each. 20 regiments of hussars ; 2 of the Guard, 18 of the Line (Nos. 1 to 18); all of 6 squadrons each. 1 regiment of Daghestan horse, of 6 squadrons.! 1 division of Oset horse, of 2 squadrons. 1 division of Turkoman horse, of 2 squadrons.^ The regiments of the Guard have titles only—thus, “ The Guard Hussar Regiment, the Emperor’s” ; while those of the Line have numbers and territorial names, and the majority also the name of their honorary colonel—thus, “ 1st Sumski Hussar Regiment (King Frederick VIII of Denmark’s).” Regiments are commanded by colonels, half- regiments (divisions) by lieutenant-colonels, and squadrons, which are divided into four troops, by captains. With the exception of the 20th Finland Dragoons and of the Crimean regiment, all the above are permanently included in cavalry divisions or brigades (see Appendix I). * It has been decided to raise another 26 regiments of regular cavalry. It is reported that 6 of these will be raised in 1914. f Practically irregulars, recruited from Mahommedan volunteers. t Irregulars, but included here for convenience.
64 Establishments.—The peace and war establishments are practically the same. A squadron consists of about 150 men. The war establishment of a 6-squadron regiment may be taken as 1,000 of all ranks, and its fighting strength as 850 sabres. For details see Appendix X. In each cavalry regiment there are two groups of specially trained men. One consists of 16 selected men (razvyedchiki\ under an officer, who are trained in scouting, reconnaissance, long distance rides, &c. The other is a detachment of two officers and 16 men, specially trained as pioneers in the destruction of railways and telegraphs and in the establish- ment of telegraphic and signalling communication.* The latter detachments have as yet only been formed in the regiments of the Warsaw and Vilna Military Districts, but the measure will soon be extended to all regiments. Cavalry scouts wear a stripe of dark orange braid down the centre of the shoulder-strap. Pioneers wear a special badge on the sleeve (see Plate 6). Machine-run detachment.—A machine-gun detachment of 8 guns of similar pattern to those of the infantry forms part of all cavalry divisions. In peace the detachment is attached to one of the regiments in the division. The guns are in carts similar to those used in infantry detachments, but the carts have 4 horses instead of 2. The ammunition is carried on pack animals instead of in carts, and the whole of the detachment is mounted. The war establishment is given in Appendix X. Men of the detachment will be armed with revolvers. Swords will be carried on the saddle. Men of machine-gun detachments wear crimson braid on the cuffs of their F.S. dress. Uniform.—See page 51 for a description of the F.S. coat and blouse and cap. .Regular cavalry wear grey-blue breeches with narrow stripes of various colours, and high boots with spurs. For distinctive marks on the uniform, see Appen- dix VI. The Oset division wears the same uniform as Terek Cossacks, with letters Oc on the shoulder-straps. * Every year 1 officer ami 2 men from every regular and Cossack regiment are sent to the nearest railway battalion for a 4 months’ course of instruction. Upon their return they act as Instructors to a regimental class of 20 pupils, which goes through a course of one year.
55 The Daghestan Regiment has light brown Circassian frocks piped with white, and with red shoulder-straps with letters Дг; breeches, grey-blue. No girdles are worn. The head-dress is a Cossack busby with cockade and wliite top. Officers also have a light brown forage cap with white band and piping. The Turkoman division wears red Turkoman gowns, yellow shoulder-straps with letters Трк, yellow waistcoats, dark trousers and girdles, and black sheepskin Turkoman caps. Armament and Ammunition.—The whole of the Russian regular cavalry is armed with the sword, rifle, bayonet and lance, the last being carried by the front rank only. The sword is curved, ana its blade is 34| inches long. It weighs 2 lbs. 4| ozs., and is carried in a leather scabbard lined with wood and weighing 1 lb. 8f ozs., the rings being on the convex edge, so that the sword is carried edge to the rear. There is a scabbard for the bayonet on the outside of the sword scabbard. The rifle is carried slung across the back, muzzle upwards, the butt being behind the right hip The (3-line) rifle is similar to that of the infantry, and takes the same cartridge. Its principal data are :—Length, 4 feet 0| inch without, and 5 feet 5'5 inches with, the bayonet; weight, 8 lbs. 3’5 ozs. without, 9 lbs. with, the bayonet. Otherwise it is identical with the infantry rifle. The lance is lOf feet long, of hollow steel, weight about 6 lbs. ; it is provided with a loop at the toe to enable a horse-holder to carry 4 or 5 lances when mounted. Swords and revolvers, of the same pattern as in the infantry, are carried by officers, sergeant-majors, trumpeters, dismounted combatants, transport under-officers, and all non-combatants, instead of the rifle and bayonet. Every man armed with a rifle carries 45 rounds on his person, 24 more are carried in regimental transport, and 164 in the local parks, 233 per rifle in all. Men armed with revolvers carry 6 rounds. Equipment and Saddlery.—The sword-belt is worn over the right shoulder, and the sword, carried edge to the rear, is suspended to it by two very short slings. The waistbelt, of brown leather, supports two pouches for 20 rounds each, one carried on each side of the buckle. The saddlery consists of a bridle with bit, a head-collar with T-bit and head-rope, a saddle with felt panels, iron arches, and two leather girths, a leather numnah, two wallets on the saddle, and
56 two saddle-bags carried on the numnah in rear of the saddle. The corn sack is carried in front of the saddle, with its ends pushed into the wallets, and over it is the rolled cloak with hood, outside of which the entrenching tool is strapped on the off, and a picket post on the near side. The man’s kit, reserve provisions, shackles, and spare horse shoes are packed in the two saddle-bags. The horse’s blanket, a canvas water-bucket for every second horse, and the man’s mess-tin are carried in rear of the saddle. The weight of the officer’s light saddle is from 16 to 18 lbs., of the officer's ordinary saddle 27 lbs., and of the saddle of the rank and file 37f lbs. The weight of the cavalryman’s clothing, equipment, arms, and saddlery is 137 lbs. The horse carries about 20 stone in all. Standard.—Every regiment has a standard, very similar to an infantry colour, which is taken on service and carried by the 1st Squadron. In each squadron 13 pairs of field-glasses are carried by non- commissioned officers and scouts. All officers, N.C.Os. and scouts carry compasses. Pioneer detachment and entrenching tool».—Each squadron is supplied with 20 Linnemann spades and 20 small axes, which are carried on the saddle in leather covers, and, in addition, in the squadron baggage are carried two large axes. Also 1 axe per squadron is carried in the regimental transport. In the cavalry regiments stationed in the Warsaw and Vilna Military Districts special pioneer detachments have been formed of 2 officers and 16 men each. These are provided with a proportion of light telegraph equipment, including 2 telegraph instruments, 2 telephones, 2 heliographs, 2 signalling lamps, &c., carried in a one-horse two-wheeled cart, certain stores for demo- litions, including 280 pyroxyline cartridges, 14 toothed and 3 ordinary crowbars, 14 sledge hammers, 3 shovels, &c., carried in 2 one-horse carts and on 6 pack-horses. This measure will probably be extended to the remainder of the cavalry, but at present the regiments stationed in other districts have only 1 one-horse cart for engineer stores, which includes 20 pyroxyline cartridges, 2 crowbars, and a few other stores and tools. Supplies.—See page 119. Transport.—The transport of a cavalry regiment of 6 squadrons in the field consists of— Regimental baggage, 1st line— 6 squadron baggage 3 ammunition* 1 medical store 1 veterinary store 1 office store 1 C.O.’s baggage 6 cookings carts, 2-horse. 2 ambulances, 2-horse. 2 pack-horses with engineer and veterinary stores. 3 spare horses. * 6,000 rounds in each.
51 Regimental baggage, 2nd line— 6 l-horse carts for squadron baggage. 1 l-horse cart for the chaplain and his stores. 1 l-horse cart for officers^ baggage. 5 2-horse wagons for supplies and artificers’ tools. 2 spare horses. Total for cavalry regiment of 6 squadrons— 1st Line—21 carriages, 34 horses. 2nd Line—13 carriages, 20 horses. Regiments in the Vilna and Warsaw Districts have 3 l-horse carts and 6 pack-horses in 1st Line baggage additional. Cossack Cavalry. Organization.—The following table shows the number of regiments and squadrons furnished in peace and war by the various Cossack armies ; see also Appendix II. * * * § ** Army. Peace. War. Regiments of 6 squadrons. Regiments of 4 squadrons. Regiments of 3 squadrons. Independent squadrons. ♦ Total squad- rons. Regiments of 6 squadrons. Regiments of 4 squadrons. Independent ! squadrons. Total squad- rons. Don 17 2t — 6 116 54 __ 36 360 Kuban 11 — — 41 70 33 — 4t 202 Terek 2 2 2$ 20 8 4 2§ 66 Astrakhan — 1 — 4i — 3 i 12J Orenburg 4 2** — 3* 35 16b 2** 3 107 Ural 2 11 — 2Ц 18 6c 3d 1 49 Siberia 3 — — 18| 9 — 54| Semiryechia ... — 1 — 4t — 3 । 121 Trans-Baikal ... 4 —- — 24| 9 —- 54J Irkutsk — — — I 1 .. — — ЗЦ 3 Krasnoyarsk — — 1 1 — — з| 3 Amur —— — — 3i 1 — 3ij 91 Ussuri — — — 2J 1 — i_ <>1 Total 43 7 2 26 318 137 i 15 57 939 * Included in the “ independent squadrons” given above are the com- ponents of the Guard Combined Cossack Regiment, which consists of: Ural 1 squadron, Orenburg 1, Siberian J, Trans-Baikal Astrakhan J, Semiryechia j, Amur J, Ussuri J. Total, 4 squadrons. t Guard regiments, “ The Emperor’s” and “ The Ataman,” raised to 6 squadrons in war. I 1 division of 2 squadrons at Warsaw and 2 Guard squadrons, which, with the Terek squadrons, form a regiment (Imperial Escort). § Guards. (See Note §.) || A division of 3 squadrons. One of these forms part of Guard Combined Cossack Kegiment. ** Nos. 5, 6. a. No. 2. b. Nos. 1 to 4, 7 to 18. c. Nos. 1, 3, 4 to 7. d. Nos. 2, 8, 9.
58 In time of peace only the so-called 1st Line Category Cossack regiments are maintained and, except as mentioned below, they are numbered in each army from 1 upwards, the Guard regiments bearing no numbers. To each of these corresponds, generally speaking, a regiment of 2nd and another of 3rd Line Category, which are embodied upon mobilization. Except in the Don voisko, no Guard regiments of 2nd or 3rd Line Category will be formed. The 2nd Line Category regiments are as a rule numbered in sequence to those of the 1st Line Category, the 3rd to those of the 2nd. Thus in the Don voisko the 1st to 17th are 1st Line, 18th to 34th, 2nd Line, and 35th to 51st, 3rd Line Category regiments. The 52nd is a mixed 2nd and 3rd Line Category regiment of men who have served in the two Guard regiments. The 1st, 18th, and 35th Regiments are recruited from the same district, and form a so-called “ chain ” (zveno), and so on in succession. The Kuban, Terek, and Trans-Baikal regiments are not numbered in sequence, but bear names and the number of the category to which they belong—thus, 1st, 2nd, or 3rd Taman (Kuban) Cossack Regiment, of which the 1st alone is maintained in peace. For details of war formations, see Appendix II. Establishments.—The peace and war establishments are generally similar to those of regular cavalry. For details see Appendix X. Cossack regiments have specially trained scouts, and those in the Vilna and Warsaw Military Districts pioneer detachments, as in the regular cavalry. See page 54 as regards machine-gun detachments. Uniform.—Cossacks, except Caucasian Cossacks (i.e. Terek and Kuban regiments), wear a F.S. blouse and forage cap* as described on page 51, and wide blue-grey trousers with broad coloured stripes varying in each army (voisko). High boots without spurs are worn. The various distinctive marks on the uniform are described in Appendix VI. Caucasian Cossacks wear the long Caucasian frock (cherkesska) open on the breast, reaching below the knees and with four cartridge pockets on each breast, loose trousers and high boots. The head- dress is a conical sheepskin cap. A hood (bashlik) is worn, and a black felt sleeveless cloak (burka) instead of a greatcoat. Except in full dress, complete freedom as to the colour of the cherkesska and head-dress is allowed, but on service a cherkesska of dark-grey or some similar inconspicuous colour would be worn. The shoulder straps on the coat are light blue in the Terek, and scarlet in the Kuban regiments. * Except Ural, Amur, and Ussuri Cossacks, who wear a sheepskin cap (рараАЛа), which may be of any natural colour except black or white.
59 Arms and ammunition.—The Cossack sword is of much the same pattern as that worn by the regular cavalry, and is carried in the same manner, but has no guard. It weighs 1 lb. 15| ozs., and its scabbard 1 lb. 3| ozs. The length of the blade is 34J inches, and of the whole sword 40J inches. It is suspended to a belt over the right shoulder, except in the Kuban and Terek Cossacks, who wear it on a waistbelt, to which is also attached a dagger (JcinjaV). The Cossack rifle takes the same ammunition as that of the regular cavalry, but has no bayonet, consequently the bayonet scabbard on the sword scabbard is also wanting; otherwise the two rifles are practically the same. The rifle is carried slung over the right shoulder, i.e., the opposite shoulder to regular cavalry. Every man. armed with a rifle carries 60 rounds, 30 in a bandolier pouch slung over the left shoulder, and 30 in a belt pouch. The lance is 9 feet long and weighs about 7 lbs. The stave is painted black, and there is no pennon. Cossacks, however, are now being equipped with the same lance as regular cavalry. It is carried (on active service as well as in peace) by the front rank of all Cossacks, except those of the Kuban and Terek. Equipment and saddlery.—The equipment is the same as in the regular cavalry, except as regards the method of carrying the ammunition. The saddlery is different to that used in the regular cavalry. The bridle (except in the Guard) is a simple bridoon with a single rein. The saddle is a simple tree with a padded valise placed over it, the whole resting on four felt numnahs with a leather cover over them. Two saddle-bags are attached to the rear arches. Cossacks other than Kuban and Terek carry the rolled greatcoat and hood strapped in front of the saddle. The latter carry the folded “ burka” on top of the saddle-bags, in rear of the saddle. The man’s kit is carried in the saddle-bags and in the valise on the saddle. The weight of the Cossack’s clothing, equipment, arms, and saddlery is 92 lbs. The horse carries about 245j lbs. in all. Banneroles.—Cossack regiments (except those of the Guard) and the Turkoman division have banneroles ito mark the position of commanders of regiments and those of squadrons, the former being always carried with the regimental commander, the latter on the right flank of the squadron. The former is a square of 35 inches side, the latter swallow-tailed, 22j inches broad, 35 inches to the tips of the tails, and 15 inches to the head of the fork. The regimental banneroles are the same colour as the shoulder straps (scarlet for Kuban and Siberian, dark blue for Don, light blue for Orenburg and Terek, crimson for Ural and Semiryechia, yellow for Astrakhan and Trans-Baikal, and dark green for Amur and Ussuri Cossacks). The Siberian, Orenburg, Semiryechia, and Trans-Baikal Regiments have a white and the Amur a yellow St. Andrew’s cross on the bannerole, and all have the regimental number in the centre. The upper half of the squadron bannerole is the same colour as that of the regiment, and in the centre is a white or yellow band if the regimental ban- nerole has the St. Andrew’s cross. The lower half is—for the
60 1st Squadron, scarlet; 2nd, light blue ; 3rd, white ; 4th, dark green : 5th, yellow ; and 6th, brown. (See Plate 12.) Pioneer detachment and entrenching tools.—As in the regular cavalry. Supplies.—As in the regular cavalry. Transport.—The transport of a Cossack regiment of 6 squadrons consists of— 1st Line squadron and regimental baggage as in a regular regiment; 2nd Line baggage—6 1-horse squadron carts ; 1 staff officer’s baggage 1-horse cart; 4 2-horse wagons ; with the same modifications as in the regular cavalry for regiments in the Vilna and Warsaw Military Districts. The transport of 4-squadron regiments is proportionately weaker. DepOt Cavalry. Regular Cavalry Depdts. Organization.—Corresponding to each cavalry regiment there is a cavalry depdt squadron which in peace trains remounts for it and in war forms a depot for the regiments in i-he held. Of these squadrons, 65 in number for Guard and Line, 61 are grouped in depdt regiments, and three in the Caucasian Depot Division. The depdt squadron of the 20th (Finland) Dragoon Regiment is not included in a line depdt regiment. The Guard Depdt Regiment has 10 squadrons, and is not brigaded. The Line Depdt Cavalry Regiments are brigaded as follows :— 1«< Depfa Cavalry Brigade.—Regiments 2, 4, 6. 4nd Deptit Cavalry Brigade.—Regiments 1, 3, 7. Zrd DepCt Cavalry Brigade.—Regiments 5 and 8, and the Caucasus Depdt Division. Each of the above depdt regiments has six squadrons, except the 7th which has nine. The Caucasus Depot Division has three squadrons only. The 1st Brigade is under the Moscow military district, the 2nd Brigade under the Kazan, the 3rd under the Kiev military district (except the Caucasus Depdt Division which is under the Caucasus district).
61 The Littoral Regiment has a separate depdt formed both in jxjace and war. The units of dep6t cavalry are under the Army Remount Department, the chief of which superintends their work and training and inspects them. On mobilization, each Guard and Line Depot squadron forms two marching squadrons and a dismounted detach- ment. The marching squadrons are sent after the regiment as soon as possible. Subsequent drafts of reserve men and horses are sent to join as required. Establishments.—The establishments of the various depot units in peace and war are given in Appendix X. Uniform, armament and equipment—Similar to that of regular cavalry. The depot squadrons formed in war will wear the same uniform as their regiment. Cossack cavalry depots. Organization.—For each group or “chain” of three regi- ments of 1st, 2nd, and 3rd Category, there is formed on mobilization a dep6t squadron, which makes good losses in men and horses in all the regiments affiliated to it. There will be in all 18 Don squadrons (including 1 for the two Guard and the 52nd Regiments), 11 Kuban, 4 Terek, 1 Astrakhan, 6 Orenburg, 3 Ural, 3 Siberian, 1 Semiryechia, 2 Trans-Baikal. Establishments.—Each squadron will be composed of 3 officers, 222 combatant and 2 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men, 224 in all, and 222 horses. Uniform armament, and equipment.—As for the corresponding Cossack regiments. Imperial Militia Cavalry. Organization, &c.—It is stated that, on the Imperial Militia being called out, 80 squadrons will be formed, which will be grouped in 20 regiments of 4 squadrons each. Each squadron will have 155 men and 158 horses. Uniform.—The F.S. dress will be similar to that of cavalry of the line with the militia cross on the front of the forage cap. Armament, equipment, and ammunition.—As in the regular cavalry, with the exception that Berdan rifles and Smith and Wesson revolvers are substituted for the small-bore weapons.* Men armed with rifles carry 36 rounds, those with revolvers 18 rounds. Training.—The Imperial Militia cavalry is liable to be called out for training, but in practice never is. * See footnote, page 43.
62 CHAPTER VI. ARTILLERY. The artillery which accompanies the armies in the field consists of :— (a) Field and Mountain Artillery ; (b) Horse and Horse Mountain Artillery ; (c) Field Howitzer Artillery ; (<Z) Heavy Artillery. (a) Field and Mountain Artillery. Organization.*—The field and mountain artillery consists in peace and war of the following units :— 3 Guard field artillery brigades,+ numbered 1st to 3rd. 4 Grenadier field artillery brigades, numbered 1st to 3rd and Caucasian. 52 Line field artillery brigades, numbered 1st to 52nd. 11 Siberian rifle artillery brigades, numbered 1st to 11th. 1 Guard rifle artillery division + of 3 field batteries. 5 Rifle artillery divisions, numbered 1st to 5th, each of 3 field batteries. 3 Finland rifle artillery divisions, numbered 1st to 3rd Finland, each of 2 field and 1 mountain battery. 2 Caucasian rifle artillery divisions, 1st and 2nd Caucasian, each of 3 mountain batteries. * It has been decided to re-organize the Russian artillery. The ’normal brigade, which at present contains 48 guns and is organized in twoidivisions of three 8-gun batteries, will probably give place to a brigade of 54 guns organized in three divisions of three 6-gun batteries. It is stated that batteries will still be commanded by lieut.-colonels. The change was probably commenced in 1913, but no details are yet available. t The 1st Guard Artillery Brigade and the Guard Rifle Artillery Division are horsed with chestnuts, the 2nd Guard Artillery Brigade with browns and the 3rd with blacks.
63 6 Turkistan rifle artillery divisions, 1st to 6th Turkistan, the 1st of 2 field and 1 howitzer battery, the 2nd, 3rd and 4th of 2 field and 1 mountain battery, the 5th of 2 field batteries, and the 6th of 1 field and 1 mountain battery. 1 independent Siberian mountain battery. The normal brigade consists of 2 divisions, each of 3 field batteries. The 12th and 32nd artillery brigades (Kiev military district) and the 1st, 2nd, 4th, 6th, 8th, 9th and 10th Siberian rifle artillery brigades have, in addition, a 3rd division of 2 mountain batteries. The 3rd Siberian Rifle artillery brigade consists of 1 howitzer division (3 batteries), 1 heavy artillery division (3 batteries) and 1 mountain artillery division (2 batteries). The 20th (Kiev), 51st and 52nd (Caucasus) artillery brigades have 1 division of 3 field batteries and 1 of 3 mountain batteries. The above artillery brigades (normally 48 guns) are allotted to the infantry divisions bearing corresponding numbers, and the rifle artillery divisions to the corresponding rifle brigades. The independent Siberian mountain battery is allotted to the 11th Siberian rifle division. The artillery of each army corps is, for technical training, placed under the corps inspector of artillery, a lieutenant- general ; in other respects each artillery brigade or rifle division is directly under the commander of the infantry division, or rifle brigade, to which it is allotted. Brigades are commanded by major-generals, divisions by colonels, batteries by lieutenant-colonels. Batteries are divided into half-batteries, and into four numbered sections. In each battery 29 men* are trained as scouts, observers, telephonists, and signallers, and 11 of them are mounted. Artillery scouts wear a strip of dark orange braid down the centre of the shoulder-strap. Signallers wear a badge of forked lightning on the sleeve. Bombardier observers wear a strip of dark orange braid across shoulder-strap at top and bottom. Bombardier layers wear a strip of dark orange braid across shoulder-strap at top and down centre of shoulder-strap. (See plate 6.) A field battery consists of :— ' Firing battery—8 guns, 8 ammunition wagons, 2 telephone carts. First line wagons (batareini reserv)—8 ammunition wagons. Transport—1st line, 1 reserve store wagon, 1 field kitchen ; 2nd line, 6 two-horse supply and baggage wagons, 1 one-horse cart. * в scouts, 3 observers, 12 telephonists, 8 signallers.
64 A mountain battery consists of 8 guns (drawn by 6 horses each or carried on 6 or 7 pack animals each), 80 pack animals with ammunition, 5 one-horse ambulance carts, 1 field kitchen, and 128 pack animals with baggage and supplies. Establishments.—-A field battery at war strength may be taken roughly as 6 officers and 270 rank and file, a mountain battery as 6 officers and 300 rank and file. For details see Appendix X. In peace only 4 guns are maintained, but the majority of the field batteries near the western frontier,* and all those in Asia, have in peace 8 guns, the number of horses maintained in some being as many as 145. In most of the batteries in Asia the number of men maintained in peace is the same as the war footing, and a fifth, or reserve, section of 46 men is maintained in peace and war. Similarly, the mountain batteries in Asia have in peace an increased number of pack horses for both guns and ammunition boxes—e.g., the Turkistan batteries have each 152 horses with 8 guns, and 18 ammunition boxes. Uniform.—The F.S. blouse, forage cap, boots and great coat are as described on page 31. Field artillery wear dark green trousers and mountain artillery black leather breeches (chamber?). Drivers wear buckled spurs. For distinctive marks on the uniform, see Appendix VI. Armamen/.—Field batteries are armed with a Q.F. gun of 3-in. calibre 1902 model with steel shield and panoramic sight. All batteries in the Turkistan Military District, it is believed all in the Omsk and Irkutsk Military Districts, and many of the batteries in the Caucasus Military District were still armed in 1913 with an earlier model (1900) without shield. Mountain batteries havea2-95-in.Q,.F.gun(1909 model) of Sclmeider- Danglis pattern. The gun is intended primarily for draught by 6 horses, but is also adapted for pack transport by 6 or 7 horses (accord- ing to whether the shield is a separate load or not). Details of the above guns are given in Appendix VIII. Ammunition.]—The ammunition carried for the field gun is as follows:— Per gun With the battery—8 limbers with 36 rounds each, 8 wagons at 88 rounds each = 992 ... 124 With 1st line wagons—8 wagons at 88...... 88 With 1st park of artillery park brigade—34 wagons at 92 = 3,128 ...................... 65 With 2nd and 3rd park of artillery park brigade—68 wagons at 92 =₽ 6,256 ......... 130 407 * Of European units, the 3rd Guard, 2nd, 4th, 6th, 8th, 11th to 13th, 16th to 20th, 25th to 28th, 30th to 32nd, 38th, 39th, 43rd and 51st artillery brigades; the 1st to 5th Rifle Artillery Divisions, and the Caucasian Rifle Artillery Divisionshave 8 guns in peace. t See also pages 71-72.
A mountain battery has 80 pack animals carrying 12 rounds each = 960 or 120 per gun. In the mountain artillery park 128 pack animals carry 12 rounds apiece = 1,636 or 96 per gun.* Armament and equipment of personnel.—Serjeant-majors, senior under-officers and trumpeters carry swords and revolvers ; scouts and transport drivers carry curved daggers and carbines ; other ranks curved daggers and revolvers. Meu with carbines wear one ammuni- tion belt-pouch. The kits of mounted men are carried in their saddle bags; those of dismounted men in canvas knapsacks on the carriages. The greatcoat, mess tin, waterbottle, haversack, and tent cloth are carried by dismounted men as in the infantry, by mounted men as in the cavalry.. Telephone equipment.—6 instruments and 12 versts (8 miles) of wire in each battery. Entrenching tools.—Sec Appendix IX. (6) Horse and Horse Mountain Artillery. Regular Horse Artillery. Organization.—The regular horse artillery consists of :— 1 Guard horse artillery brigade of 5 batteries.! 23 line horse artillery batteries, numbered 1 to 23. 3 horse mountain divisions, 1st, 2nd, and Caucasian, each of 2 batteries. 1 Turkistan horse mountain battery. The 1st and 2nd divisions of the Guard H.A. brigade are attached to the 1st and 2nd Guard Cavalry Divisions. The 3rd battery of the Guard H.A. brigade is attached to tho Independent Guard Cavalry Brigade (XXIII A.C., Warsaw). The 23 line H.A. batteries are organized in 12 divisions, numbered 1 to 12, each division consisting of 2 line batteries, except the 8th, which has one line and one Don Cossack battery.J The divisions are attached to cavalry divisions, and usually bear the same numbers as the cavalry divisions to which they are attached. A. division is commanded by a colonel; it has a staff as for independent field artillery divisions (see Appendix X.) Batteries are commanded by lieutenant-colonels and are divided into 3 numbered sections. * According to some authorities there are LOO rounds j>er gun with the battery and 120 in the park. t A 6th battery, the Don Cossack battery of the Guard, also forms part of this brigade. t See p. 67 for Cossack batteries. (в 10626) e
66 The 1st Horse Mountain Division is attached to the Ussuri Cavalry Brigade (1st Siberian A.C.), the 2nd forms part of the IX A.C. (Kiev), and the Caucasian Division is attached to the Caucasian Cavalry Division (II Caucasian A.C.). Establishments.—The war establishment of a horse battery may be taken roughly as 5 officers and 220 rank and file, of a horse mountain battery as 5 officers and 250 rank and file. Six guns and 6 ammuni- tion wagons are maintained in peace. A horse artillery battery consists of:— Firing battery—6 guns, 6 ammunition wagons, one telephone cart First line wagons—6 ammunition wagons. Transport—1st line, 1 reserve store wagon, 1 ambulance wagon, 1 medical cart, 1 field kitchen; 2nd line, 5 two-horse supply and baggage wagons, 2 one-horse carts. A horse mountain battery consists of:— Firing battery— 6 guns, 6 ammunition wagons, 1 pack animal with telephone equipment. First line wagons—6 ammunition wagons. Transport—61 pack animals, 1 field kitchen. Uniform.—F.S. blouse, forage cap, and greatcoat are as described on p. 51. Horse artillery wear blue-grey breeches and boots with spurs as in the cavalry. Horse mountain artillery wear black leather breeches. For distinctive marks on the uniform, see Appendix VI. Armament.—Horse artillery batteries are armed with the same gun as field batteries, ibut the equipment is somewhat lighter and fewer rounds are carried. For details, see Appendix VIII. Horse mountain batteries have the same gun as mountain batteries Armament and equipment of personnel.—Scouts and transport drivers carry swords ana carbines; all other ranks swords and revolvers. N.C.Os. and men carry the sword on the saddle. Entrenching tools.—See Appendix IX. Supplies.—As in the cavalry Telephone equipment.—6 instruments and 12 versts (8 miles) of wire in each battery. Ammunition.— per gun With the battery ... 6 limbers at 24. 6 ammunition wagons at 72 = 576 96 With battery reserve 6 „ „ 72 72 No special provision of ammunition is made in the parks for horse batteries. Horse mountain artillery have a park similar to 1 hat of mountain artillery.
67 Cossack Horse Artillery. Organization.—Horse artillery batteries are furnished by the various Cossack armies as follows :— Army. Peace. War. Don (Guard) Don (Line) Kuban Terek Orenburg Trans-Baikal i Total 1 7 5 2 3 2 I 1 21* 5 2 Gf 20 39 The Line batteries are numbered in each army from 1 upwards ; those of the higher numbers, formed in war only, are batteries of the 2nd and 3rd Categories. The batteries existing in peace are formed in divisions of 2 batteries each and attached to cavalry divisions in the same way as the regular batteries. Establishments—The war establishment is approximately the same as that of a regular horse battery. Uniform.—Similar to that of other CoEsaeks, according to the voisko to which they belong, but the coloured side of the shoulder straps and patches on the great coat collar are as in the remainder of the artillery. The stencilling on the grey green sides of the shoulder straps is dark blue. See p. 58 and Appendix VI. The Don Cossack Guard battery wear piping as in the other Horse Artillery of the Guard. Armament.—As in the regular batteries. Armament anti equipment of personnel.—As in the regular batteries, except that Cossack swords are worn. Entrenching tools, supplies, and transport.—As in the regular batteries. • Nos. 8 to 14 are of 2nd, 15 to 21 of 3rd Category. f Nos. 4 to 6 are of 2nd Category. j Nos. 8 and 4 are of 2nd Category (в 10626) в 2
68 (c) Field Howitzer Artillery. There are 35 howitzer (mortirnie) divisions of 2 batteries each, viz., Guard, Grenadier, Nos. 1-25,1st to 3rd Caucasian, 1st to 5th Siberian. They are attached to the Army Corps corresponding to their number. There is also 1 independent howitzer battery attached to the 11th Siberian Rifle Division. There are thus 75 howitzer batteries in all, including the howitzer division of the 3rd Siberian Rifle Artillery Brigade and the howitzer battery of the 1st Turkistan Rifle Artillery Division (see p. 63). Each division consists of a staff and two batteries and is commanded by a colonel. Batteries are commanded by lieutenant-colonels, are numbered in each division, and are divided into 3 numbered sections. Six men per battery are trained as scouts, observers, and signallers and are mounted. There are in addition 12 telephonists per battery. A howitzer battery consists of:— Firing battery—6 guns, 6 ammunition wagons, 2 telephone carts. First line wagons—12 ammunition wagons. Transport—1st line, 1 four-horse reserve store wagon, 3 section one-horse carts, 1 field kitchen ; 2nd line, 6 two-horse supply and baggage wagons, 28 one-horse carts. Establishments.—The war establishment of a howitzer battery may be taken roughly as 5 officers and 240 rank and file. For details, see Appendix X. Uniform.—As in the field artillery, with the number of the division and Mp. on the shoulder-strap ; Siberian batteries have the number of the division and C6. Mp, and Caucasian batteries have number and K. Mp. (gee Appendix VI). The uniform of the Guard Howitzer Artillery Division is similar to that of the Guard Rifle Artillery Division, but with light blue piping instead of red (see Appendix VI). Armament.—A 4*8-inch Q.F. field howitzer (1909) of Krupp pattern was recently adopted. It is improbable that all the batteries are yet armed with this howitzer and a 4-8-inch Q.F. Schneider howitzer is known to be in use, and possibly other patterns also. Details of the Krupp and Schneider howitzers are given in Appendix VIII. Ammunition.— Per howitzer. With the battery ... 6 limbers at 14 .......| 6 ammunition wagons at 34 f With battery reserve 12 „ „ 34 68 116 In addition 360 rounds per gun is carried in the park. About 30 per cent, of the ammunition carried is shrapnel. Armament and equipment of personnel and telephone equipment.—As in the field artillery.
69 (d) Heavy Artillery. Organization.—There are 7 divisions of Heavy Artillery, viz, 1st to 5th and 1st and 2ц<1 Siberian. They are attached to Army Corps as follows :— 1st division to XX A.C. (Vilna district), 2nd „ to XIX „ (Warsaw „ ), 3rd „ to XVII „ (Moscow „ ), 4th „ to XXI „ (Kiev „ ), 5th „ to XIII „ (Moscow „ ), 1st Siberian division to II Siberian A.C. (Irkutsk district), 2nd „ „ to I „ „ (Pri-Amur „ ). Though attached to army corps in peace the heavy artillery divisions are intended to form part of the army troops in war.* Each division consists of 3 batteries of 4 guns each. There are thus 24 batteries of heavy artillery in all, including the heavy artillery division of the 3rd Siberian Kifle Artillery Brigade (see page 63). Eatablishments.—No establishments have yet been officially published. A reliable German source gives the establishment of a battery as 4 officers and about 200 rank and file (see Appendix X). A heavy battery consists of:— Firing battery.—4 heavy guns or howitzers, 4 ammunition wagons, 2 telephone carts. First line wagons.—8 ammunition wagons. Transport.—1st line, 1 four-horse reserve store cart, 1 field kitchen ; 2nd line, 6 two-horse supply and baggage wagons. Лrmament.—The 1st and 2nd batteries of each division are armed with 6-inch howitzers and the 3rd battery with 4’2-inch guns. The weapons adopted are known as the 6-inch howitzer (1910),” and the “ 42-line gun ” respectively. All the batteries have not yet received the new weapons, and some have old 6-inch siege howitzers and 4-2-inch siege guns of 1877 pattern. With these old guns the platform is carried separately and takes over an hour to erect. They are not, in fact, field guns at all. Details of the above are given in Appendix VIII. * It is reported that it has been decided to equip each army corps with a heavy division which will form an integral part of the corps in peace and war. The army troops will then contain no artillery.
70 Ammunition:— guu howitzer With battery—4 ammunition wagons at 20 ... 20 20 With battery reserve—8 ammunition wagons at 20 ................................... 40 40 With park—Howitzers, 28 wagons at 40=1,120 — 140 Guns, 10 wagons at 75 = 750 ... 187 — 247 200 Uniform, equipment, фс.—As for other artillery. The number of the division followed by Тж. (Тж. Об. for Siberian divisions) is worn on the shoulder straps (see Appendix VI.) Field Ammunition Parks. Artillery parks in peace are no longer maintained, with the following exceptions :— (a) Field artillery parks in the 1st, 2nd, 4th, 5th, 6th, 9th and 10th Siberian Rifle Artillery Brigades. Only the first 3 of these are horsed in peace. (6) Field howitzer parks in the 1st, 2nd, 4th, and 5th Siberian Howitzer Divisions, and in the howitzer division of the 3rd Siberian Rifle Artillery Brigade. Only the first of these is horsed in peace. (c) Mountain artillery parks in the 1st, 2nd, 3rd, 4th, 6th, 9th, and 10th Siberian Rifle Artillery Brigades. Only those of the 1st, 2nd, and 4th are horsed in peace. (c? ) Six horse-mountain artillery parks, 2 for each of the horse-mountain artillery divisions. (e) Heavy artillery parks in the 2nd Siberian Heavy Artillery Division, and the heavy artillery division of the 3rd Siberian Rifle Artillery Brigade. Only the former is horsed in peace. On mobilization, an artillery park brigade of 3 parks is formed for each artillery brigade and a park for each indepen- dent artillery division. A park division of 2 parks is formed for the howitzer divisions. The local artillery parks, of which one is formed for each army corps, form the second line of supply. They are fed
To face page 71. METHOD OF AMMUNITION SUPPLYIN THE Л О ГЯООРО !" ACTION. J ЙЕЗЕЯУЕ. V f $ F—-------------- Supply by 5.4.Л. carts with regiments л wagons of battery reserve. 4J /20 /28 Company and battalion 5. A.A. Carts. Battery or divi sionat battalion S .A.A. Car/в . к Л 66 88 Supply by if.park of ar park brigade. <0 cu /^fpark . *__________ __________________________________<?<? & k <ъ J | 2nd & 3rd park. 46 /30 4 H~~ H H7ZZZZ2ZH <D Supplies brought up by rail by requisitioned transport. Local park. ///6 1.8./3. Note When the nearest local park is more than 4 marches distant, the parks are divided into 3 echelons instead of 2 (see page 7/ )
71 from the Army Artillery Reserve Park or direct from field ammunition dep6ts (see page 72). Establishments.—See Appendix X. Parks which carry mixed ammunition are divided into 3 sections, of which tho first carries rifle and the other two artillery ammunition. The howitzer and mountain parks which carry only gun ammunition are divided into two sections. Uniform.—As for other artillery. See also Appendix VI. Armament.—Serjeant-majors and serjeants carry swords and revolvers; other ranks curved daggers and carbines. Ammunition Supply. All the artillery parks of an army are under the orders of the Inspector-General of Artillery of the army. When a collision with the enemy appears probable, one of the parks of the artillery park brigade joins the rear of the fighting column, while the 2nd and 3rd parks follow at the head of the 2nd line transport column. At the commencement of an action the park brigades are divided into echelons : into two, when the nearest local artillery park is not more than 4 marches distant, into three when it is at a greater distance ; the first echelon (one park) is placed two to three miles in rear of the fighting line, the second echelon (consisting in the former case of 2 parks, in the latter case of one) about one march in rear, and the third (if the local park is more than four marches away) half way between the second echelon and the local park. The commander of the artillery park brigade remains with the commander of the artillery brigade in action. The artillery brigade commander fixes the place for the 1st park and the park brigade commander the place for the 2nd and 3rd parks. Echelons of ammunition supply are linked by orderlies or telephone. Infantry.—The 16 one-horse ammunition carts will accompany their companies as far forward as possible, and will be filled from the 8 two-horse battalion carts, which are under an officer in a central position a short distance in rear. The battalion carts are filled from the 1st park of the artillery park brigade, two to three miles in rear. Artillery.—An artillery brigade is fed in action by ammunition from the wagon bodies which are drawn up on the left of the guns. Five or six hundred yards in rear and to a flank of each battery are the 8 gun and 8 wagon limbers.
72 A short distance further in rear the 8 remaining battery wagons are grouped together in two divisional reserves of 24 wagons each. Empty carts and wagons sent back from the fighting line are refilled and sent forward again. In urgent cases full wagons may be sent forward from the 1st park, but no interchange of wagons is allowed between the echelons of the parks. Sections are sent forward from the second echelon to the first, empty their loads and return again to their own parks. To expedite the issue of ammunition, echelons may form temporary depots by unloading the whole or part of their ammunition at the places where they are placea. The artillery parks will be fed by the local parks and the latter by the Army Artillery Reserve Park or by the depdts, the ammunition being conveyed in requisitioned transport if no line of rail is available. Rear Services of Artillery in the Field. No cadres exist for these in peace ; they are formed on mobilization. The Army Artillery Reserve Park formed for each army consists of 192 ammunition wagons and sel ves to keep up communication between the parks and the field ammunition depdts. Its personnel, &c., comprises 2 officers, 4 officials, 1,448 combatant and 74 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men, 1,258 horses, and 199 carriages. The Field Ammunition Depdts (sldadi ognestryelnikh pripaeov).—These are organized in such numbers as the Commander-in-chief may determine, on the advice of the officer commanding the artillery. They are under the immediate orders of the chief of the artillery parks of the army, and keep the artillery and local parks supplied with made-up ammunition. Each ammunition depot has an establishment of one officer. 5 officials, and 40 non-combatants. The First Artillery Reserve.—Every army operating in the theatre of war is provided with a “ first artillery reserve ” (peredovoi artilleriski zapas) to furnish the troops of that army with artillerymen, artillery horses with their harness
73 complete, guns, artillery wagons, and small arms, but not with ammunition. It is divided into four sections:—(a) The administrative staff of 1 officer, 6 officials, 30 non-combatants, and 10 horses; (b) The personnel section with a fixed cadre of 5 officers, 7 combatants, and 2 non-combatants, and a variable establishment equal to 10 per cent, of the personnel and 5 per cent, of the horses forming part of the artillery of the army; (c) The artillery material section with 5 per cent, of the guns and ammunition wagons, and 10 per cent, of the gun carriages, stores, and harness of the artillery of the army ; (d) The small arms section with a reserve of small arms. The First Artillery Reserve and the ammunition depdts are formed at the main base of operations, and are termed depdts of the 1st Line. If, in the course of the campaign, the army advances too far from these, new depdts are formed at the intermediate bases. The material required for this purpose is supplied by the district artillery depdts {okrujnie artilleriskie skladi), where a supply sufficient for this purpose is maintained in peace. The transport of the material from all these depots to the army in the field may be effected either by rail, steamer, or requisitioned or hired wheel transport, in which last case special parks are formed for the artillery. Mobile Laboratories (podvijnaya laboratomaya master- xkaya).—Six mobile laboratories are mobilized by the district artillery depdts as follows :—No. 1 at St. Petersburg, No. 2 at Brest-Litovsk, No. 3 at Kiev, No. 4 at Kremenchug, No. 5 at Bobruisk, and No. 6 at Alexandropol. They are intended to prepare and alter the ammunition required for the field troops or siege train, and are established for this purpose at the ammunition depdts. They have no cadres in peace, the personnel and material being furnished by the district artillery depdts. Additional laboratories are formed as required for an Asiatic theatre of war. The establishment of each is 2 officers, 2 officials, 115 men, 31 horses, 9 carriages. Mobile Artillery Workshops (podvijnaya artilleriskaya masterskaya).—These are mobilized at the same points as the mobile laboi'atories. They consist each of an artillery and a small arm section, and are intended to repair the damaged guns and small arms of the army. They are established at points where material and arms requiring repairs accumulate.
74 The requisite material is supplied to them from the depdts at the base of operations, and they execute only those more important repairs which are beyond the power of the artificers attached to the different corps. They have no cadres in peace, the men and material required to form them being furnished by the district artillery workshops. The establishment of each is 2 officers, 4 officials, 157 men, 116 horses, 27 carriages. Depot Artillery. The only depdt artillery unit existing in peace is one depdt horse artillery division of 2 batteries. It is stationed at Orel in the Moscow Military District and is attached to the 2nd Independent Cavalry Brigade (XIII A.C.). On mobilization it is believed that one depdt battery would be formed for each active artillery brigade, and one for each independent artillery division. Imperial Militia Field Artillery. Organization and Strength.—It has been stated that on the Imperial Militia being called out, 80 batteries will be formed ana combined into 40 regiments, each of 2 batteries. One regiment is to be attached to each of the 40 infantry divisions. Each battery will have 6 officers, 174 combatant and 19 non-com- batant* non-commissioned officers and men, 144 horses, 8 guns 8 ammunition wagons, and 5 other carriages. Uniform.—As in the regular field artillery, with the militia cross or badge on the cap, and the number of the regiment on the shoulder- strap. Local Artillery Detachments. Local Artillery Detachments exist at Kremenchug, Moscow’, Tiflis, Vyerni, and Omsk. Nothing is known as to their strength, composition, or armament. They are probably of no military value. Fortress Artillery. Organization.—The fortress artillery consists of :— The brigades, regiments, battalions, and independent com- panies enumerated below, which are named after the fortress in which they are stationed, and are numbered within that fortress if there are more than one. Battalions are usually of 4 companies each. The units are :—
75 1 Fortress and Class. Brigades. Regiments. Battalions. Companies. Kronstadt, 1 ...! 1 2 6 , 24 St. Petersburg — 1 1 Sveaborg, 2 — 2 j 10 Viborg, 3 — 1 1 4 Kovno, 1 ... — — 6 I 24 Ust-Dvinsk, 3 ... — — 1 5 Libau* — — 1 2 Osovets, 3 1 — 2 8 Lomja [ — 1 2 Warsaw* 1 ' 4 : 16 Novogeorgievsk, 1 — 1 — 6 . 24 Brest-Litovsk, 1... — 5 20 Ivangorod* — 1 — 3 12 Sevastopol, 2 — — 2 8 Kerch* — — — 1 Ochakov, 3 1 — 1 5 Bender ... — — — 1 Kars, 3 — — 3 12 Mikhailovsk (Batum), 3 * — — 2 | 7 Alexandropol — — 1 1 1 Terek-Daghestant — — — 4 Turkistan — — — 3 Kushk, 3 — — , 1 3 Kerki — — 1 Termes — — — 1 Vladivostok, 1 ... 2 4 15 ! 60 Nikolaevsk, 3 i 1 1 i 2 Total 1 3 1 6 1 62 261 * Libau, Warsaw, Ivangorod, and Kerch are no longer classed as fortresses; Mikhailovsk is said to have been dismantled, but still retains status of a fortress. Part of their garrisons of fortress troops will be transferred to the fortresses now under construction at Grodno and Revel- Porkala (Fortress of Peter the Great) and the remainder will probably be incorporated in the new field units now believed to be in process of formation. t Garrisoning the posts of Khodjal Makhi, Khunzakh, Veden, and Akhti.
76 Establishments.—The peace and war establishments vary consider- ably. (See Appendix X.) The Vladivostok battalions are maintained on a war footing. On the “ higher peace strength ” are the Nbvogeorgievsk, Osovets, Kronstadt, Sveaborg, Sevastopol, Viborg, and Kushk battalions. On the “peace strength” are the Kovno and Ust-Dvinsk battalions. On the “ lower peace strength ” are the Brest-Litovsk, Ochakov, and Kars battalions, and Terek-Daghestan companies. In each fortress there is maintained a separate staff for all the fortress artillery and other artillery services belonging to it. Siege artillery is no longer maintained in peace, and would be formed as required in war. The following are some of the types of siege artillery guns and howitzers which would be used :— 6-inch gun (1904). 8-inch light mortar. 9—meh ,, ,, The following of 1877 type are also still in use :— 6-inch mortar. 42-inch gun. 6-inch gun of 120 puds (about 2 tons). 6-inch gun of 190 puds (about 3 tons). 8-inch gun. In defence works, in addition to the above siege guns, are mounted also:— 6-inch fortress howitzer (1909) of Schneider pattern. 8-inch heavy mortar (1877). 8-inch gun (1877). 57 m.m (2|-mch) anti-storm Q..F. gun 11-inch mortar. 10-inch gun. G-inch Q..F. gun. Uniform.—As in the field artillery. For badges, &c., on the shoulder-straps, see Appendix VI. Armament and equipment of personnel.—As in the infantry, but the men have only one pouch, and carry bayonet scabbards on active service Imperial Militia Garrison Artillery. Ten battalions will be formed in war, each with 24 officers, and 1,308 combatant and 8 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men.
77 CHAPTER VII. TECHNICAL TROOPS. The technical troops in Russia consist of : sapper bat- talions, which include sapper and telegraph companies; wireless telegraph companies; pontoon battalions; air troops : railway troops and automobile companies ; field and siege engineer parks ; and fortress engineers. These will be dealt with under the following headings :— (a) Field engineers, viz: the sapper companies of sapper battalions, pontoon battalions, and field and siege parks. (&) Communication troops, viz : the telegraph companies of sapper battalions and wireless telegraph companies. (c) Air troops. (d) Railway troops, and automobile companies. (e) Fortress engineers. (a) Field Engineers. Organization.—These consist of :—39 sapper battalions, г.е. one for each corps of the active army, usually bearing the same number as the corps to which they belong, and 2 extra Siberian sapper battalions. 9£ pontoon battalions, viz., 1st to 7th and 1st and 2nd Siberian (all of 2 companies) and 1 Turkistan pontoon company. Engineer field parks, formed in war only. 4 engineer siege parks, viz., 1st (XX A.C., Vilna district), 2nd (XXI A.C., Kiev district), Caucasian (I Cauc. A.C.) and Siberian (I Sib. A.C.).
78 Sapper battalions have 3 sapper companies, except the Guard sapper battalion, which has 4. Each sapper battalion has in addition 1 or 2 telegraph companies, and a searchlight section. Battalions are commanded by colonels, companies by captains. In war, the sapper battalions are split up. The 1st and 2nd sapper companies, each with a light bridging train, are allotted to the infantry divisions of the army corps. Headquarters, with the 3rd sapper company, one telegraph company, and the searchlight section, become army corps troops. The extra telegraph company, in battalions which have two, is allotted to one of the armies as army troops. Pontoon battalions and siege parks are in peace attached to various army corps. In war they would be allotted to armies as required. No cadres are maintained in peace for engineer field parks but the transport is held ready in store.* In war they would be formed from reservists, and a section of a field park would join each army corps. It forms a mobile reserve of all engineer material for the army corps, and is also drawn on when necessary to supplement the entrenching tools carried by the troops. Establishments.—See Appendix X. Uniform and equipment.—As in the infantry ; dismounted men wear the same knapsack as infantry of the Guard, and mounted men wear the same personal equipment as drivers of the field artillery. Sapper battalions and companies have camp flags similar to those of infantry (see page 45). The battalion flags have 3 horizontal strips of white, orange and black. Company flags are brown with a * Previous to 1910 small cadres were maintained in peace, and the fol- lowing were the parks in existence:— 1st Field Park St. Petersburg 4 sections. 2nd ,, Vilna 6 ,, 3rd ,, Kiev 6 ,, 4th ,, Warsaw 7 ,, 5th ,, Odessa 3 ,, 6th ,, Moscow 7 „ Caucasian ,, Caucasian 4 ,, Turkistan ,, Turkistan 4 ,, Omsk Omsk 1 section. Irkutsk ,, Irkutsk 3 sections. Pri-Amur Pri-Amur 2 M Total 47
79 vertical stripe, which is red in the 1st company, blue in the 2nd white in the 3rd, green in the 4th, yellow in the 5th. Battalion and company flags have the same special badge and lettering on thefn, as on the shoulder straps (see Appendix VI), except the Guard Sapper Battalion. For distinctive marks on uniform, see Appendix VI. Armament.—Dismounted men carry rifles and bayonets. Each man carries 30 rounds.* Mounted N.C.Os. have revolvers and swords, other mounted men swords only. Entrenching tools.—The following tools are carried by the men of sapper companies and pontoon battalions :— — Sapper company. Pontoon battalion. Light shovels 100 140 Light axes 70 80 Combined pickaxe and mattock 30 48 Augers 4 8 Carpenters’ chisels 8 16 Tracing tapes, 70 feet 4 « Cross-cut saws 4 8 Engineer equipment and transport—Sapper battalion.—Each sapper company has, in addition to the tools carried on the men, 20 shovels, 24 light and 32 heavy axes, 10 light and 8 heavy combined pickaxe and mattock, 2 crowbars, 2 cross-cut saws, 100 sandbags, sets of carpenters’, wheelers’, joiners’, smiths’ and blacksmiths’ tools, ropes and cables, nails and other stores for bridging, 800 detonators, 720 lbs. pyroxiline and other stores for demolitions, and numerous other stores. A company has 4 telephones and 10 versts (6f miles) of wire. The 1st and 2nd companies have each a light bridge park, sufficient to construct a bridge of 23 yards length for all arms.f The searchlight section of a sapper battalion has a searchlight with a tower carried on a 6-horsc wagon, a generator carried on a 4-horse wagon, and 6 1-horse carts. The searchlight is believed to be 70 cm. in diameter. No details are known. The following is the transport of a sapper battalion:— (a) Headquarters, 3rd Company, and Searchlight Section.—1 officers’ cart, 1 S.A.A. cart, 1 4-horse ambulance, 1 medical and 1 sanitary store cart, 8 2-horse supply wagons, 1 company * 30 rounds per rifle are carried in addition in the Company S.A.A. carts. There is no special reserve provided in the parks for the sappers, and they would have to draw on the infantry reserves. t According to one good authority .the 3rd company has also a light bridge park.
80 supply cart, 2 field kitchens, 12 engineer store carts, and 1 6-horse wagon, 1 4-horse wagon and 6 carts for the search- light section. (b) Sapper Company with an Infantry Division*.—1 S.A.A. cart, 4 supply and baggage 2-horso wagons, 1 supply cart, 1 field kitchen, 12 engineer store carts, 6 4-horse wagons with bridging park. Pontoon battalion.—In addition to the tools carried by the men, a pontoon battalion carries 20 shovels, 20 heavy axes, 16 combined pickaxe and mattock, 8 crowbars, 44 end sections and 12 middle sections of pontoons, 8 trestles, 2 anchor boats and all the necessary tools and stores for bridging, 400 detonators, 200 lbs. pyroxiline and other tools and material for demolitions. A pontoon battalion has 4 telephones and 10 versts (6J miles) of wire. The principal dimensions of the Russian pontoons are :— — Length. Breadth. Depth. 1 ! Weight. Total buoyancy. ft. in. 1 ft. in. 1 ; ft. hl. ! lbs. lbs. End sections 14 1 6 2J 2 5 758 10,364 Middle sections 11 ft CM eo 2 5 j 722 I 9,967 A pontoon made up of two end sections will, with a load of 10,040 lbs., be immersed to a depth of 15 inches, with one of 11,917 lbs. to a depth of 20 inches, and with 18,418 lbs. to 27 inches. It is laid down that the limit of immersion to be observed is 20 inches, when used as supports of a bridge, and 15 inches when the pontoons are employed for ferrying purposes. A pontoon battalion can construct 233 yards of normal bridge. The time occupied under favourable conditions in bridging an ordinary stream by the whole battalion is as follows:—By booming out, two hours ; by bays, one hour; and by swimming, half an hour The transport of a pontoon battalion consists of:— 96 six-horse wagons with bridging material (56 with pontoons, 32 with material for roadway, 2 'with ribands, &c., 4 with trestles and 2 with boats); 6 two-horse wagons (2 with instruments, 2 smithies, 2 for reserve material); 1 telephone and 1 explosives cart; 2 S.A.A. carts, 1 four-horse ambulance wagon, 1 medical and 1 sanitary store cart, 4 battalion and 10 company supply and baggage two-horse wagons, 3 field kitchens. Details of the technical equipment and transport of the Turkistan pontoon company are not available, beyond that telephone stores,
81 explosives for demolitions, reserve entrenching, and smiths’ tools are carried in 12 one-horse carts, and ammunition, supplies, baggage, &c., in 32 one-horse carte. Secticn of a field park.—A section of a field park carries 1,200 sapper shovels, 1,500 small shovels, 150 light, 120 heavy, and 200 small axes, 350 small, 150 light, and 50 heavy combined pick-axe and mattock, 12 crowbars, 200 sandbags, a reserve of carpenters’ and smiths’ tools, of bridging material, 800 detonators, 600 primers, 4 telephones, 4 heliographs and other signalling material. The above is carried in 51 one-horse carts. Siege engineer park.—A section of a siege park carries 2,500 sapper shovels, 400 heavy axes, 800 light and 300 heavy combined pick-axe and mattock, 100 cross-cut saws, 2,000 sandbags, a large quantity of various tools, stores for mining work, 3,000 primers, 1,600 detonators, 3,600 lbs. of pyroxiline, 25 telephones, and 50 miles of wire. The above are carried in 216 one-horse carts, 6 of which are for telephone equipment. Each section has, in addition, 72 three-horse wagons. (6) Communication Troops. Organization.—These consist of— 50 telegraph companies of the 39 sapper battalions* (see page 78). 7 wireless telegraph companies, viz., 1st to 4th, Caucasian, 1st and 2nd Siberian. + In peace the telegraph companies form part of sapper battalions, and the wireless telegraph companies are attached to certain army corps. In war one telegraph company is allotted to each army corps, and one or two to each army in the field ; a wireless company would be allotted to each army. In war a telegraph company consists of 2 air-line and 2 cable sections. A wireless telegraph company consists of 2 sections. Establishments.—See Appendix X. 4 The Guard, 2nd, 4th, 6th, 11th, 14th, 19th, 1st Turkistan, and 1st, 4th, and 5th Siberian sapper battalions have 2 telegraph companies each. The others have 1 each. t It is believed that the material for the equipment of another 7 com- panies is held ready. (B 10626) F
82 Telegraph equipment and transport. Telegraph company.—(a) Each Air line section of a telegraph company has 4 sets of telegraph instruments, 2 heliographs, 2 lamps, 6 tele- phones, 5| miles of telephone wire, and all material necessary for the erection and maintenance of 25 versts (16$ miles) of air-line. The material is carried in 30 one-horse carts, viz. :—4 with telegraph stations, 2 for visual signalling stations, 2 for telephone stations, 20 for materials and tools and 2 for reserve material. (b) Each cable section of a telegraph company has the same telegraph, telephone and visual signalling equipment as an air-line section and all material necessary to lay out and maintain 25 versts (16f miles) of cable. The material is carried in 22 one-horse carts, viz. :—4 with telegraph stations, 2 for visual signalling stations, 1 for telephones, 13 for laying out cable each with 2 drums (1 verst each) of cable, and 2 for reserve material. The total transport of a telegraph company is :— 30 carts for stations (16 telegraph, 8 visual, 6 telephone). 74 carts with material (44 for air-line sections, 30 for cable section). 1 cart with stores. 16 two-horse baggage wagons (4 per section). 4 two-horse supply wagons (1 „ „ ). 4 field kitchens (1 „ „ ). Wireless telegraph companies.—A company consists of 2 sections, each with 3 stations, and apparatus for 1 reserve station. Stations have a range of 150-250 versts (100-150 miles) and require 30-45 minutes to erect. Each station is carried on 3 carts, and each section has also a spare cart. There is no spare cart for the reserve station. Each station has 1 cart for petrol and tools, and there are 3 with the headquarters, making a total of 13. These carts are all two-horsed. The total transport of a company is :— 40 two-horse carts with stations and tools. 2 S.A.A. (1 per section). 1 medical. 1 sanitary store. 2 officers’ baggage 1 office 2 ambulance (1 per section). 57 baggageand supply (26 „ „ , 5 with headquarters). 2 field kitchens (2-horse). >► one-horse carts. Means and system of communication in the field. The following is a brief recapitulation of the apparatus available in the various units for telephonic and telegraphic communication in the field :—
83 I Telephones. Telegraph. Infantry or rifle regiment...............; 9 Battery of artillery....................... 6 Staff of infantry division or independent 9 brigade Staff of army corps......... ... ... 5 Telegraph company of army corps— । Cable sections....................... 12 Air-line sections ................... 12 8 1’4 10 8 33| 8 831 1Ц In addition there are available the 13 mounted orderlies and 2 cyclists of each infantry regiment (see page 41) and the visual signalling equipment carried in units.* The general principle is that communication runs from senior to junior. Exception arises in the case of infantry and artillery brigade commanders, who have no telephone equipment at their disposal. Thus regiments keep up communication with their battalions, the brigade commander and the neighbouring units, infantry division H.Q. with regiments, direct or through the brigade commander, and neighbouring units, army corps H.Q. with their divisions by means of the cable section and with the rear services by means of the air-line companies. * Visual signalling is comparatively little used in the Russian army. (в 10626) F 2
84 The telegraph companies of an army* serve to keep up communication with the various army corps, and the wireless telegraph companies to keep up communication with other armies, detached forces, the cavalry, &c. (e) Air Troops. Organization.—The air troops in Russia consist of 14 air companies, (yozdukhoplavatel/niya roti) viz. :—The Brest- Litovsk Air Battalion of 2 companies, the 3rd to 6th and 9th to 11th air companies, the 1st Caucasian air company, the Siberian Air Battalion of 3 companies, and the 4th Siberian Air Company; and 3 flying companies^avtatezcmmya roti), the 1st at St. Petersburg, the 2nd at Sevastopol and the 3rd at Kiev. The air companies are attached to army corps in peace except the Brest-Litovsk battalion (Brest-Litovsk fortress), the 3rd Company (Sveaborg fortress), the 6th (Osovets fortress), the 11th (Novogeorgievsk fortress) and the Caucasian (Kars fortress). The organization of the air services is not yet complete. As aeroplanes become available, a flying company will be formed in each military district to contain flying squadrons [aviatsionnie otryadi), of which one of 12 aeroplanes and 6 pilots will be formed for each army corps, and also in several aistricts an extra flying squadron, destined to form part of the army troops in war. As the flying companies are formed, they will absorb such air companies as are not required for the fortresses. Thus the 7th Air Company has been already absorbed in the 3rd Flying Company and the 8th in the 2nd Flying Company. * During the war of 1904-05 two mounted telegraph units, styled “telegraph squadrons/’ were formed for service in Manchuria, and the measure may be adopted in future campaigns. They are intended rapidly to establish telegraphic, telephonic, and visual communication between the Commander-in-Chief of a group of armies in the field and his several armies, while on the march or in action. A squadron is attached to the staff of the Commander-in-Chief or of an army and is placed under the Quartermaster- General concerned. It is divided into 2 telegraph-telephone sectionsand 1 visual section, and may have either wheel or pack equipment. Its personnel is selected from the cavalry, either regular or Cossack, of the active army. The strength of a telegraph squadron in Manchuria was 4 officers and about 100 rank and file. It could establish 4 telegraph, 8 telephone, and 4 visual stations simultaneously, and carried 16-20 miles of wire.
85 Most of the air companies include a flying section equipped with aeroplanes, all have got balloons and several have dirigibles. Russia was believed to possess about 350 aeroplanes at the end of 1913, chiefly monoplanes of the Nieuport type and Farman biplanes. It is reported that 1,000 aeroplanes have been ordered for delivery in the years 1914-16. Uniform.—Officers of air units wear a special badge on the shoulder-straps. It consists of an eagle holding a propeller and sword in its claws. (d) Railway Troops. Organization. —These consist of— Bns. Cos. Military District. 1st Railway Regiment ... 2 8 St. Peters- 1st f ’2nd „ battalion ... 1 4 ' ourg Railway < 3rd ,, ,, 1 4 ► Vilna Brigade [ 6th „ ,, 1 4 . 4th „ „ 1 4 Warsaw 5th ,, ,, ... 1 4 Vilna 2nd I f 7th ,, „ ... 1 4 ' Railway Brigade 1 L 8th ,, . „ 1st Caucasian Railway 1 4 . ► Kiev battalion 1 4 2nd Caucasian Railway battalion 1st Siberian Railway 1 4 . ► Caucasus battalion 2nd Siberian Railway 1 4 Irkutsk battalion 1 4 Trans- f 1st Trans-Amur Railway Amur | Railway J Brigade ’ Regiment 2nd Trans-Amur Railway 2 8 > Pri-Amur Regiment 2 8 (Frontier 3rd Trans-Amur Railway Guard) Regiment 2 8 J
86 The 1st Railway Regiment is under the Palace Com- mandant, the other battalions under the military district commander as regards discipline and for technical training under the Chief of Military Communications of the Head- quarter Staff, who is also Inspector of Railway Troops. The duties of railway troops in war are to supplement the existing railway system by means of normal gauge or hasty field lines ; to repair and destroy railways and to carry out their technical working in the theatre of war. Railway battalions and field railway parks are allotted to armies as required. In peace they may be employed on construction work as for instance on the Kars—Sarikamish line, or in the working of existing lines ; thus the 1st Railway Regiment works the St. Petersburg—Gatchina section, and the Kovel— Vladimir—Volinsk line is used as a military instructional railway, while the 2nd Siberian Railway Battalion works the Khabarovsk—Alexandrovsk harbour railway. The Trans-Amur Railway Brigade has a special instructional battalion. An Officers’ Railway School is in course of construction at Kiev. Establishments.—See Appendix X. Uniform and equipment.—As in sapper battalions. Combatants are armed with rifles; engine drivers, stokers, and guards carry revolvers. Railway units have battalion and company flags as for sapper battalions. Engineer etpiipmenl.—A company has, besides surveying instru- ments, artificers’ tools, and all stores necessary for construction and traffic service, a number of tools, including ‘299 shovels, 35 picks, 39 hammers, 70 crowbars, &c., and telegraph apparatus for 6 stations. Galvanic, blasting, surveying, and bridging stores are carried for the battalion. For the transport of a portion of these, 2 two-horsed wagons per company are provided, but the bulk of the stores would have to be brought up by rail. Field Railway Parks are organized either for mechanical or horse traction. The Park unit consists of 66 miles of line with 60 engines and 320 trucks, or, for horse traction, 1,800 trucks and 6,‘200 horses. A field railway train usually consists of 10 trucks, and carries 59 tons; a train with horse traction of 80. trucks, and carries 196 tons. It is estimated that 5 kilometres of line for horse traction can be laid a day and 4 kilometres for mechanical traction. Animal traction only was used in the war of 1904 -5.
87 Automobile Companies. There is an Instructional Automobile Company in St. Petersburg, consisting of— (a) Headquarters (4 officers, 2 officials, 17 other ranks). (b) The company (3 officers, 19 N.C.Os. and 21 other ranks as permanent staff, 10 N.C.Os. and 80 other ranks attached for the course). (c) The Officers’ Course, 150 officers. (d) Workshops (1 officer, 25 other ranks). Its duties are to train officers and men from the railway or other troops in service with mechanical transport, to study the use of mechanical transport and carry out experiments. Automobile companies have recently been added to certain of the railway battalions, but no details are known.
88 (e) Fortress Engineers. Organization.—The following are the units available :— Fortress. Sapper companies. Submarine mining companies. River mining com- panies. I Telegraph detach- | ments. J Pigeon stations. Kronstadt 1 2 1 ___ Sveaborg... " - 1 — 1 Viborg ... — 1 — —— Kovno 1 — — 1 1 1 Ust-Dvinsk 1 1 1 1 1 1 — Libau* — — 1 1 1 1 — Osovets 1 — — 1 1 Warsaw*... 1 — 1 1 1 1 N ovogeorgie vsk । 2 _2 | 1 , 1 Brest-Litovsk ... ...' 1 — 1 1 1 Ivangorod* I 1 —— — ! 1 1 1 Sevastopol 1 2 — 1 1 Kerch* — 1 — — — Ochakov ... — 1 — — 1 Kars 1 — — — — Michailovsk* 1 — — — — Vladivostok 4+ 4+ — | 1 Coy. 1 Nikolaevsk 1 — 1 1 I — 17 13 3 12 and 1 Coy. 8 I ♦ See footnote, page 75. f Forming battalions.
89 The Vladivostok fortress engineers are formed into a brigade, the staff of which consists of 3 officers and 5 rank and file. In war the above sapper and mining companies are doubled with the exception of those at Ust-Dvinsk and Vladivostok. Establishments.—The peace and war establishments of the various units are as given in Appendix X. Units at Vladivostok and Nikolaevsk are maintained permanently at war strength. Uniform.—As in the sapper battalions. For distinctive marks on the shoulder-straps, see Appendix VI. Arms and equipment.—As in corresponding field units. Engineer equipment.—This forms part of the engineer equipment of the fortress, and is not specially laid down. DepOt Engineers. Organization.—Upon mobilization 4 depdt sapper battalions will be formed. Each depdt battalion will consist of 4 sapper companies, 1 submarine mining, and 1 telegraph company. A depdt engineer technical battalion is formed upon mobilization by the electro-technical company existing in peace.* It is mobilized under special arrangements. Strength.—The dep6t sapper battalions have each a permanent cadre of 17 officers, 2 officials, 248 combatant and 29 non-combatant rank and file, and 12 horses, and a variable effective of 17 officers and 1,650 rank and file. Uniform, equipment, фс.—As in active sapper battalions. Imperial Militia Engineers. Organization, &c.—It is stated that on mobilization 20 militia sapper companies, grouped in five battalions, will be formed. Each battalion will number 20 officers, 3 officials, 948 combatant and 30 non-combatant and non-commissioned officers and men, 36 horses, and 16 carriages. Uniform.—As in the active units, with the Militia cross on the forage cap. * The electro-technical company forms part of the Electro-Technical School.
90 CHAPTER VIII. SPECIAL CORPS AND DEPARTMENTS AND EDUCATIONAL ESTABLISHMENTS. The Frontier Guard. The Frontier Guard forms a portion of the armed strength of the Empire, but in peace is under the Ministry of Finance. It forms a cordon on the land and sea frontiers to prevent smuggling and the passage of the frontier by unauthorised persons. In Manchuria it is employed in guarding the railways. There are 8 Frontier Guard districts, viz., 1st to 6th in Europe, 7th in Central Asia, and the Trans-Amur Frontier district. Each district contains a number of brigades, and in some cases independent detachments, as under :—
91 — Establishment. Officers. Rank and File. Mounted. Infantry. 1st (St. Petersburg) District. 4 brigades (1st to 4th) and 1 (White Sea) de- ' 115 405 1,844 tachment 2nd ( Wind) District. 5 brigades (5th to 9th) 176 2,205 3,952 3rd (Warsaw) District. 6 brigades (10th to 15th) 213 2,646 i 6,011 | 1th (Kiev) District. 5 brigades (16th to 20th) 171 2,205 3,359 bth (Odessa) District. 4 brigades (21st to 24th) and 1 (Kerch) detach-1 124 1,134 2,238 ment 6M (Tiflis) District. 5 brigades (25th to 29th) 1 175 2,374 5,212 7th, (Tashkent) District.* 2 brigades (30th and 31st) 1 68 1 ! j 1,370 989 Total 1,042 12,339 23,605 and 212 native aowars A brigade is divided into 3 or 4 sections ; a section is divided into from 3 to 5 detachments ; a detachment is divided into from 3 to 6 posts. To each of these is allotted * The Tashkent District contains the Trans-Caspian and Arau Darya Brigades. The Trans-Caspian Brigade watches 1,160 miles of frontier. It is divided into 5 sections, containing in all 20 detachments, and finds garrisons for 67 posts and 2picquets. Its establishment consists of 37 officers, 865 mounted men, 127 voluntarily enlisted native sowars, and 555 infantry. The Amur Darya Brigade watches 530 miles of frontier, it is divided into 4 sections, containing in all 15 detachments, and finds garrisons for 51 posts. Its establishment consists of 31 officers, 505 mounted men, 85 voluntarily enlisted native sowars, and 434 infantry.
92 a portion of the frontier or coast-line to watch. In the former case the posts are in two lines, one on the frontier, the other about 5 versts (3J miles) from it, the latter serving as a support in the former. In addition to the posts on all roads, &c., crossing the frontier, constant patrols along it keep up communication between the posts. An accurate knowledge of the country on both sides of the frontier is one of the first objects for the frontier guards to attain. A brigade stationed upon a land frontier is usually organized in 4 companies and 4 squadrons ; a coast brigade in 5 companies and 1 squadron.* The corps is officered by transfers from the active army. The men are in part recruited, in part transferred from the active army. It is stated that in war time each brigade in Europe and the Caucasus will furnish 1 frontier cavalry regiment of 4 squadrons, and 1 frontier infantry battalion of from 2 to 4 companies ; and that each district will furnish 1 frontier division. The Trans-Amur Frontier Guard is organized in 3 detachments (otryad). There are 6 infantry regiments (55 companies), 6 cavalry regiments (55 squadrons), 4 or 6 horse mountain batteries and 1 sapper company. Their total strength is about 20,000 men.t Uniform and equipment.—The Frontier Guard wear a F.S. dress as for other arms, with grey-blue trousers. The coloured side of the shoulder-straps is green, with the number in yellow, followed by к fw' cavalry and П for infantry. The patch on the collar of the great-coat is blue with green piping. The men are armed and equipped as regular infantry, artillery, or cavalry, according to the branch they belong to. Field Gendarmerie. In time of peace 7 cadres of field gendarmerie are main- tained, named Guard and 1st to 6th, which expand to full squadrons on mobilization and are attached for police duties to the armies in the field. Etiablixbmentf.—See Appendix X. * The coast brigades also possess a number of small armed steamers. t By the treaty of Portsmouth the number of railway guards in Manchuria was limited to 15 per kilometre. As the total length of line is 1,717 '5 kilo- metres, the total number permissible is 25,760.
93 Uniform and armament.—F.S. blouse and blue-grey trousers. White cord aiguillettes are worn. For distinctive marks on shoulder, straps, see Appendix VI. Ser jean t-majore aye armed with sword and revolver, other N.C.Os. and men with carbine and curved dagger. Disciplinary Units. There are 7 disciplinary battalions, of 2 to 6 companies each, 3 independent companies and 1 independent detach- ment. They are named after the towns in which they are stationed. Men are sent to serve in them by sentence of a military court. Odessa Sea (Iforskoi) Battalion. This corps performs duties in transporting troops by sea, and conducts the instruction during ppace of other corps in the technical details of the service. Detachments of officers and men from all units stationed in the Odessa Military District are sent to go through instruction with the battalion. It is divided into 2 companies, 1 technical and 1 “ rowing.” There is also an instructional detachment and an engineering school. Strength.—11 officers, 2 officials, 272 combatant and 13 non- combatant non-commissioned officers and men. Uniform.—Rowing company, as sailors of the fleet; technical company, F.S. dress with dark-green trousers. Shoulder-straps and patches on greatcoat are red with O.Mp. Armament and equipment.—Men are armed with cavalry rifles, serjeant-majors with swords and revolvers. Technical equipment.—The battalion is in possession of a number of boats and other marine stores. Amu-Darya Flotilla. The Amu-Darya Flotilla, which is used to maintain com- munication on the Amu-Darya, is under the Commander of the Turkistan Military district. It consists of 6 paddle steamers, and a number of barges, &c. The establishment is 13 officers and about 400 rank and file.
94 Caucasian Native Militia. This permanently embodied militia is recruited by voluntary enlistment from among the natives, who serve in their own localities only, and for purposes of police duty and suppressing insurrection. The units and strengths are as foiiows :— N.C.Os. and men. 1 Units. 1 Д to 1 1 ! CO s О £ £ Non- i ba tar co о co C E ^1 о 5 о ( О § 1 H 1 s Kuban Permanent Militia | i (1 squadron) 1 72 1 73 73 Daghestan Permanent Militia (8 squadrons) 3 183 — 183 186 Kars Permanent Militia (8 squadrons) 6 318 — 318 324 Batum Permanent Militia ; (1 squadron) 1 2 106 — 106 108 Batum Permanent Militia 1 1 (2 companies) 4 212 " " 1 212 — Sukhum Permanent Militia (1 squadron) ! — 170 — i j 170 170 Total I 16 1,061 1 1,062 861 The Terek Permanent Militia was abolished in 1910, and in its place was formed, for a period of 5 years, the Terek Police Guard (okhrannaya straja) of 7 officers and 510 N.C.Os. and men. The uniform and equipment are most varied. In war large additions to the above might be made. Field Post. The postal establishments in the field comprise the Central Field Post Office, the Field and Reserve Field Post Offices, the Field Telegraph Control Stations, and the Field Posting
95 Stations (or “ Flying Post ”). The Central Field Post Office (55 employes) arranges for the sorting and despatch on receipt of correspondence to or from the post offices or units within its sphere of action. Of the Field Post Offices (20 employ6s), one is attached to army head-quarters, and one to those of £ach army corps, and one Reserve Field Poet Office (11 employes) is provided for every two army corps to meet the wants of divisions or detached corps, or to be stationed at important points on the lines of communication. Relay posts (9 employes) are established along lines of road communication at distances of not more than 16£ miles apart, and provide horses for the postal relay service. The personnel is furnished by the Imperial Postal and Telegraph Department, the material is kept stored ready in peace, and the horses are furnished by the horse conscription. The postmen are armed with dragoon swords and revolvers. Corps op Military Topographers. This corps, which is under the General Staff and which executes all military topographical, survey and cartographic work, is composed of :— (a) Military topographers of the rank of officers and officials who have received a special education in the military topographical school. The course at this school lasts 2 years, with a supplementary course of 1 year, which is not obligatory. The entrance age is from 17 to 25. (6) Officers who have passed the survey section of the Imperial Nicolas Academy and completed a 2 years’ course in geodesy at the astronomical observatory at Pulkova are transferred to the Corps of Topo- graphers as “ geodesists.” In addition, officers of the active army who undergo a special course at the military topographical school may be attached to the Corps of Topographers for topographical work. The corps consists of about 150 officers and 150 officials. Uniform.—Military topographers wearaF.S. uniform with light blue breeches. The patch on the great coat is black with light blue piping. Aiquillettes are worn
96 Courier Corps {Fddyegerski Korpus). The Courier Corps consists of trustworthy, experienced, and intelligent officers and N.C.Os., who are employed as couriers in carrying important despatches, or as orderlies at head- quarters. In war, to the staff of the Commander-in-Chief of the armies in the field are attached 8 officers and 8 non-commissioned officers, to that of each army 4 officers and 4 non-commissioned officers of this corps. Each courier is provided with a pass giving him a right to horses, &c., without payment, and all station commandants are bound to do all in their power to facilitate the journeys. For this purpose, depdts of post-horses, carriages, drivers, &c., are formed at all stations on the roads leading from the army to the nearest railway station, and these horses, &c., may only be used by officers employed in the courier service. The horses are provided by the chief of the lines of communication in conjunction with the chief of transport of the army. Reserve Horse Depots. To ensure an adequate supply of horses in war, a general horse dep6t is formed upon mobilization which contains a reserve of 10 per cent, of the number of horses in the field armies. It is divided into sections of from 300 to 400 horses which are named after the localities in which they are quartered. The horses are obtained by requisition, and for each section a personnel of 1 officer and 165 men is detailed. From these sections, reserve horse depdts are formed for the field armies as required and forwarded to such points as the staff of the field army may determine. Each dep6t has a staff composed of 5 officers, 3 officials, and 18 men, and is divided into divisions of 300 to 400 horses, for each of which a personnel of I officer and 165 men is provided. The divisions are divided into sections of 100 horses, which may be distributed as required. The men of the reserve horst! dep6ts wear the uniform of the 4th regiment of an infantry division, with Кон. Зап on their shoulder-straps.
97 Pay Department. The highest authority of the Pay Department of an army in the field is the chief field paymaster of an army, an official of the 2nd class, who is directly under the commander of that army, and who has at his disposal a staff of officials and clerks of his department. The duties of the chief pay- master are to supervise, through his assistant, the issue of cash from the chief field treasury, and to superintend the expenditure by the subordinate paymasters of the cash in their treasuries. In addition to the chief field treasury, treasuries are maintained for each army corps and each detached portion of the army, and are administered by the paymasters assistants. For immediate payments, field treasuries are supplied direct with cash by the Minister of Finance, who also settles the amount each treasury is to be credited with on its formation. All forms of account are settled by him in consultation with the Control Department. The chief field treasury renders accounts to those authorities ; all other treasuries render accounts to the chief field treasury. Sums allotted to the army commander for the use of the army are credited to the chief field treasury, and are drawn upon—at head-quarters, by the chief field paymaster ; else- where, by treasuries as thereto authorized by him. Treasuries are also empowered to receive contributions and taxes levied in the theatre of war, and regimental and private funds for custody. Control Department. The highest representatives of the Control Department are officials of the 2nd Class of the chin, who are placed under the army commanders. They are the assistants of the army commanders in the supervision of the regular and economical employment of the resources placed at their disposal, and their duties are to supervise all expenditure in the various departments, to verify the contents of treasuries, to collect information as to prices obtaining in the theatre of war, to criticise proposals for expenditure of money, to verify all accounts and contracts, to see that the audit regulations (в 10626) (J
98 are complied with, &c. Under the chief controller of the army are the controllers of army corps and of the Military Districts of the theatre of war. The chief controller of the army has at his disposal a staff of officials and a temporary audit committee, by which all accounts are finally passed. He distributes the control duties among the officials at his disposal. He has the right of calling for all information and documents concerning the matters in which he has jurisdiction from heads of depart- ments of the staff, from corps commanders, and from those of independent divisions, and from the civil authorities in the theatre of war. On malpractices or irregularities being discovered, he reports the same to the heads of departments or units concerned, and if these do not agree with his opinion, he reports the matter to the commander of the army, supporting his opinion by evidence, documentary or other- wise. He reports all his proceedings to the Imperial Control Department, and carries out the directions given by the latter. The duties of a corps controller are, in general, as regards his army corps parallel to those of the chief controller of the army, and he is placed under the orders of the latter for control duties, as well as under those of the corps com- mander. In addition to inspecting accounts and treasuries, field control officials have the right of verifying the contents of all stores, magazines, and depots, but only in the presence of the officials in charge of them, and after receiving authority from the military superiors of those establishments. Educational Establishments. The cadet and Military schools for the preliminary training of the officer have already been mentioned on page 15. The following are the academies and schools for higher military training :— (a) Academies :— The Imperial Nikolas Military Academy. The Mikhail Artillery Academy. The Nikolas Engineer Academy.
99 The Academy of Military Law. The Intendance Academy. The Military Medical Academy. All the above are at St. Petersburg. The first-named corresponds to our Staff College and all officers of the General Staff must have passed through it. It also includes a Survey Section. The course lasts 3 years. The courses at the other academies usually last 2 years with supplement- ary courses of 6 months to one year in some cases. (b) Schools :— The Musketry School The Cavalry School The Gunnery School all at St. Petersburg. The School of Gymnastics j and Fencing J The Aeronautical School, at Gatchina, near St. Petersburg. The Aviation School of the Committee for Strengthening the Fleet, at Kacha, near Sevastopol. The Electro-Technical School, at St. Petersburg. Schools of Oriental Languages at Tiflis, Tashkent and Vladivostock. A Railway School, in course of construction at Kiev, will be completed in 1914. (в 10626) g 2
100 CHAPTER IX. MEDICAL* AND VETERINARY. MEDICAL ESTABLISHMENTS IN PEACE. In peace there is no medical corps in the Russian Army existing as a unit by itself. Each combatant unit has a small medical personnel belonging to it, the medical establish- ment for a regiment of infantry of 4 battalions, for example, being 1 senior and 4 junior surgeons, 1 senior and 12 junior dressers, 1 apothecary dresser, 14 dresser pupils, 1 hospital sergeant, and 3 hospital orderlies, all non-combatants. Each unit has its own hospital, that of an infantry regiment of 4 battalions numbering 84 beds, of 2 battalions 42 beds, of a 6 squadron cavalry regiment 30 beds, of a battery 8 beds and of a sapper battalion 28 beds. In addition there are, in certain of the larger garrisons, station hospitals (posloyannie voennie gospitali) for more severe cases, with beds for from 150 to 800 men, and to these a medical personnel varying from 4 to 18 medical officers, with the necessary subordinate personnel is attached. In the smaller stations and in those where only reserve and local troops are stationed there are local hospitals (myestnie lazareti) each with from 50 to 350 beds, which are organized upon the lines of the station hospitals. From the above, as cadres, are formed all the medical units required on mobilization, the extra medical personnel being taken from the reserve, and the drivers supplied from the reserve of the cavalry. * For further information, see “Handbook of the Medical Services of Foreign Armies: Part IV, Russia ” (1910).
101 MEDICAL ESTABLISHMENTS IN WAR. (a) Regimental, Each unit in the field has a medical personnel with the requisite stores and transport attached to it. The scale of beds in a regimental hospital (voiskovoi lazaret) is as follows :— Infantry—For each battalion........ 4 Cavalry or Cossack Regiment ... ... 6 Artillery brigade ... ........ 6 Independent artillery division.... 4 Independent battery ........... ... 2 Sapper or pontoon battalion ....... 4 Independent pontoon company... ... 2 Air company ... ... 2 Taking an infantry regiment as an example, the medical personnel is the same as in peace, except that there are 20 junior and company dressers, and no dresser pupils. The material comprises stores for a hospital of 16 beds, and in addition, each dresser carries a dresser’s knapsack for first aid, and 32 stretchers are provided. The medical transport.consists of 4 one-horse carts for medical stores, 1 two-horse wagon with stretchers, &c., and 4 four-horse ambulance wagons. At least 4 men per company are trained as stretcher-bearers, and when so employed wear the Ked Cross badge on their left arm, but otherwise take their places in the ranks. On mobilization the number of bearers in each unit is raised to 4 per stretcher by the employment of reservist musicians, hospital servants and other nou-combatants. The medical arrangements in other units are of a similar nature. In action the regimental medical personnel form advanced dressing stations, to which the wounded of the regiment are brought in, and in which their wounds are attended to and first aid is applied. When troops are halted, a regi- mental hospital is organized. Uniform.—Surgeons wear F.S. coats as described on page 51 and dark green trousers. Their shoulder pieces are narrower than those of an officer and have silver lace. They wear the same equipment as officers. (b) Sanitary Sections. To each infantry division in the field is attached a “ sanitary section ” (sanitarni otdyel), which forms part of
102 the divisional train, and consists of 1 “ divisional hospital ” (divizionni lazaret), including a bearer company, and 2 “mobile field hospitals ” (podvijni polevoi gospital). The “ divisional hospital ” corresponds to the British “bearer division, field ambulance,” “the mobile field hospital” to the “ tent division, field ambulance.” Divisional hospitals. Organization.—The duty of the divisional hospital in action is to form a main dressing station, to search for and bring in the wounded from the field or the advanced dressing stations to it, and to co-operate with the troops in dispatching the wounded to the field hospitals told off to them. The main dressing station is marked by day by two flags (one national and the other bearing the Red Cross), and at night by a red lantern. Establishment.—1 divisional surgeon commanding and 4 other sur- geons, 5 feldshers, the overseer (smotritel) (a combatant officer, who commands the bearer company), his assistant (an official), >24 non- combatant medical subordinates; a bearer company of 217 N.C.Os. and men, and 39 transport N.C.Os. and men—280 N.C.Os. and men in all, with 78 horses and 27 carriages. Uniform and arms.—The uniform worn by the men is the same as that of the infantry. For distinctive marks on shoulder straps see Appendix VI. The transport drivers have hatchets ; the remaining personnel is unarmed. Except the transport drivers, all wear the Red Cross badge on the left arm. Equipment.—Each hospital is supplied with 1 special and 50 ordinary stretchers, 10 boxes each with 200 sets of bandages, 50 lanterns, and 50 bandaging knapsacks (1 of each per stretcher), 4 dressing tents, 2 operating tables, medical stores, food, &c., &c. Transport.—The vehicles consist of 8 four-horsed ambulance wagons, '3 one-horsed medical store carts, 15 two-horsed store wagons and 1 four-horsed store wagon for the heavy parts of the tents. Rifle brigade hospitals. Organization and establishment.—To each rifle brigade which includes artillery is attached a sanitary section, which forms part of the brigade train and is styled a “rifle brigade hospital.” Its duties are as described above for a divisional hospital.
103 Its establishment is 1 brigade surgeon commanding and 3 other surgeons, 1 hospital overseer, commanding bearer company, with 1 assistant (officials), 21 non-combatant medical subordinates, a bearer company of 141 N.C.Os. and men, and 32 transport N.C.Os. and men —194 N.C.Os. and men in all, with 56 horses and 25 carriages. Uniform and arms.—As given above for a divisional hospital. Equipment.—The stores carried are similar and proportionate in quantity to those carried in a divisional hospital. Transport.—The vehicles consist of 8 two-horsed ambulance wagons, 15 two-horsed store wagons, and 2 one-horsed medical store carts. Mobile Field Hospitals. Organization and establishment.— The mobile field hospital forms the 3rd Line of medical assistance, and each affords accommodation for 10 officers and 200 men. In action their position is selected by the divisional surgeon, and to them are brought the wounded from the main dressing station. After an action they are emptied and follow their division as soon as possible. In action they are marked by flags, as for a main dressing station. The strength of each is 5 surgeons, 1 other official, 1 overseer and his assistant, 10 feldshers, 97 N.C.Os. and men (including 28 for transport), 53 horses, and 24 carriages. In addition to the 2 mobile field hospitals included in the sanitary section of each infantry division, each active infantry division mobilizes 2 mobile field hospitals for general duty and 4 “ reserve ” hospitals. Their composition is precisely similar to that of the others, and they are dis- posed of as required by the staff of the army to which they are attached. In addition to the brigade hospital 1 mobile field hospital is attached to each rifle brigade. A rifle brigade mobilizes in all 4 hospitals, viz., 2 mobile field hospitals and 2 reserve hospitals. Field Dispensaries. The field dispensaries supply the divisional and field hospitals with all the medical and surgical stores they require. Seven in all are mobilized, and they are distributed as required. Each is provided with a supply equal to 4 months’ requirements, and has a personnel of 3 officials and 33 non-combatants. Transport is provided only when required.
104 Bed Cross Society. The Red Cross Society is a semi-military organization which is financed and administered by private enterprise, but has an official status. In time of war it assists and supplements the army medical services, primarily upon the lines of communication, but when necessary and possible at the front also. It is in some measure subordinated to the army medical services, and its directors maintain close touch with the directing staff and the surgeons of the aimy. It organizes “flying detachments,” which work on the field of battle in conjunction with the army medical services, hospital railway trains, temporary base hospitals, and other services. The formation of a new grade of 1st class reservists, to act as medical orderlies of the Red Cross in war, was authorized in 1912. Soldiers selected will undergo a special course of 4 weeks’ training in their last year’s colour service under arrangements made by the Red Cross Society. It is believed that a cadre of 7,000 will thus be formed eventually. Uniform.—F.S. blouse and light grey-blue breeches. Shoulder- straps of grey-green colour (no coloured side) with Red Cross badge on them, and a white brassard on left sleeve. Medical Service with the Field Army. As in the British Army, the medical service with the field army is divided into the medical personnel attached to the various units, the “ divisional hospitals,” which correspond to our bearer divisions, and the mobile field hospitals, which correspond to our tent divisions. On the lines of communication are the reserve (immobile) field hospitals, the sanitary convoys, the detachments of weakly men, the hospital railway trains, and the field medical store depots. In the home territory are the station, fortress, and local hospitals. The military medical service is aided and supplemented by the Red Cross hospital establishments. The chief of the medical service with an army in the field is the Adjutant-General of that army,* who exercises his ♦ In the war of 1904-05 the medical services were withdrawn from the supervision of the Adjutant-General and placed under the “Director of Medical Services” (nachalnik sanitamoi chasti агтгг), a new appointment. This combatant officer, a lieutenant-general, was immediately subordinate to the Army Commander. His duties, mainly administrative, embraced the organization of the evacuation services, the supply of medical stores, &C-, and the general supervision of the entire medical service.
To face page I04-. diagram to show organization of MEDICAL WORK IN FIELD. (See text, pages IOI-IO8.) Troops in action. About About About I mile. I/Л? miles. Line of advanced dressing stations. (Regimental). (Regimental ambulance wagons). Main dressing station. (Divisional hospital). A (Divisional hospital ambulance wagons). l... ' i 2. Mobile Field hospitals. Collecting point of zk field evacuation committee. О . Medical establishments Medical establishments of field zone. of L.of C. evacuation —_ zone. Interior evacu- territory. and paid for by Government. *ше w.a.a lb.13.
105 functions as regards the medical and sanitary service through four subordinate heads of departments, the Military Sanitary Inspector, the Veterinary Inspector, the Inspector of Field Hospitals, and the plenipotentiary of the Red Cross Society. The duties of tne Military Sanitary Inspector of the Army ( Voenno-sanitarni in&pektor Armii), who is at the head of the Field Sanitary Department, are to superintend all sanitary and disciplinary measures for the preservation of the health of the troops, to watch over the treatment of the sick and wounded and see that a proper selection is made of cases for evacuation, to take measures for the supply of medical stores to all medical establishments, and to supervise the medical personnel of the army. Under his orders are the Surgeon-General of the Army, the surgeon in executive charge of army headquarters, and a reserve of medical personnel. The sanitary inspectors of military districts of the theatre of war and the chief surgeons of corps are under his direction, although he does not interfere with the details of their work, and the field dispensaries are moved and distributed by him. He maintains close relations with the medical department at Headquarters (home), and reports to it all measures he has taken, all the requirements of the medical service, and the sanitary state of the troops. He keeps up close communication with the Inspector of Hospitals for affairs concerning the interior economy of the hospitals, with the plenipotentiary of the Red Cross Society for matters concerning the medical work of that society, and with the medical inspectors of military districts for the treatment of the sick sent to the rear. He furnishes the Adjutant-General with detailed statements of the requirements in medical personnel, the requirements in stores, the special sanitary measures to be taken, and the selection from a medical point of view of sick and wounded for evacuation. Under the immediate orders of the Sanitary Inspector is the Surgeon-General of the Army, a medical officer, who is responsible for medical as opposed to administrative matters, «•e., the general care for tne health of the army, treatment, selection of patients for evacuation, indent for medical stores, &c. The Inspector of Field Hospitals {Inspektor Gospitalei Лгииг), who is at the head of the Field Hospital Department,
106 is a military officer, usually a major-general, whose authority extends over all the hospitals of the army, but not over regimental medical services. He supervises the supply to all medical establishments of the stores, instruments and personnel required by them. At his disposal is a reserve of medical personnel, and under him are the chiefs of all local hospitals and evacuation committees. He communicates with the Sanitary Inspector and the Red Cross plenipotentiary regarding matters which involve co-operation of this society in the case of the sick and wounded, with the chiefs of the lines of communication and road departments for the organization of the transport of the wounded, and with the intendant of the army for the supply of the provisions, &c., to medical establishments from the intendance magazines. He submits to the Adjutant-General detailed plans for the measures to be taken to enlarge permanent hospitals and provide extra mobile and reserve field hospitals, the dis- tribution of mobile hospitals, the provision of hospital stores and supplies, the replenishment or augmentation of personnel, the formation of sanitary stations, detachments of weakly men, rest houses, lines of communication, hospitals and sani- tary and hospital trains on the railway, and for the evacuation of the sick and wounded in general, and carries those measures, after approval, into execution. The plenipotentiary of the Red Cross Society has at his disposal all the resources in personnel, material, and money supplied by the Red Cross Society for the assistance of the sick and wounded in war. He keeps up close communication with the Inspector of Hospitals and the Sanitary Inspector, and receives from them information as to how he can best afford assistance. He inspects all the establishments belonging to the society, reports to the A.djutant-General as to their condition and contents, and informs the headquarters of the society at home of any further requirements. The chief surgeon of an army corps is the adviser in sanitary matters of the corps commander, and initiates all measures to preserve the health of the troops. He reports to the Surgeon-General of the Army. He supervises the supply of medical, &c., stores to the medical establishments of the corps and the disposal of medical stores captured from the enemy. Before an action he takes measures for the con-
107 centration at dressing stations of a sufficiency of personnel and stores, and supervises their working and the removal of the sick to the hospitals designated for the purpose. He directs the operations of such portions of the establishments of the Red Cross Society as are attached to the corps, and has the right of transferring medical personnel or establish- ments from one unit to another if necessary. In some cases he has an assistant, styled the corps sanitary officer, who is responsible for the supply of transport, personnel, &c., and other administrative matters, but has nothing to do with treatment. The chief surgeon of a division is the immediate head of all medical establishments attached to that division. While he is directly under the orders of the divisional commander, he carries out, in medical matters, the directions of the chief surgeon of the corps. He selects the points at which field hospitals are to be established, and ensures their being emptied and made available again as soon as possible. He supervises the medical personnel and takes measures to keep its numbers complete, and frequently inspects the hospitals and their accounts and books. He has under him a sanitary inspecting officer who relieves him of routine administrative work. Medical Service ox the Lines of Communication. The medical service on the lines of communication is superintended by the same authorities as that with the field army, namely, the Inspector of Hospitals and the Sanitary Inspector, and the evacuation service is specially attended to in the evacuation section of the Adjutant-General’s department. Detachments of from 60 to 200 weakly men (slabosilnaya komanda) are formed along the line of communications as required, and com- prise convalescents, sickly men, and slightly wounded, &c., who do not require hospital treatment. They are placed under the super- vision of the chief surgeon of a hospital, and for discipline are under an officer who has the powers of a company commander. Reserve field hospitals.* These are established at points on the lines of communication as may be required, 240 of them in all being maintained. They have no transport, their personnel and stores being forwarded by rail or on requisitioned carriages. * See page 103.
108 Their composition is similar to that of a mobile hospital, less the transport personnel, and each has 5 surgeons, 4 officials, 80 N.C.Os. and men, and 4 sisters of mercy Military Sanitary Transport Units ( Voenno-sanitarni transport). These are formed for the transport of the wounded and sick from the battle-field to the rear, and are disposed of as required by the staff of the army. They are classed as “permanent ” or “ temporary.” The former provide accommodation for 150 sick and wounded, but the vehicles maintained in peace provide only for 100 men in wagons and 5 on pack transport. The remainder of the transport is obtained by purchase, hire, or requisition. ’ The proportion of “ permanent ” units is laid down as one to each infantry (or rifle) division and one to every two rifle brigades. 41 Temporary ” units are formed as required. The establishment consists of 2 medical officers, one of whom is in command, 1 administrative official, 1 sub-ensign in command of the personnel, 4 feldshers, 28 medical orderlies, clerks, &c., and 108 transport N.C.Os. and drivers. The transport consists of 2 carts with medical stores, 14 G.S. carts for stores, &c., 50 ambulance carts, 22 hired carts, 2 field kitchens, and 10 pack animals for carrying sick; total, 90 vehicles, 115 horses. Ambulance railway trains {Voenno-sanitarni poyezd). Ambulance trains are provided for the evacuation of sick and wounded from the theatre of war. A proportion of them are placed at the disposal of the Adjutant-General at the Headquarters of the Commander-in-Chicf for the use of the armies, and the remainder are held at the disposal of the Headquarters staff at home. The Adjutant-General distributes the trains allotted to him among the armies, and in each army the trains are under its Adjutant-General. The trains are provided partly by the State, partly by the Red Cross Society, and partly by private enterprise. Instead of sending fully-equipped ambulance trains to the front, “cadre” trains will be sent. These will consist of carriages to accommodate the medical personnel, a limited number of carriages specially fitted for the transport of severely wounded cases, and a number of wagons carrying medical and surgical equipment, as well as the fittings required to adapt goods vans for ambulance purposes. “ Cadre ” trains will be of two kinds: (a) for use between field hospitals and reserve hospitals on the lines of communication; in this case each cadre train will form with adapted goods vans three temporary ambulance trains, each to carry 500 wounded ; (5) for use between hospitals on the lines of communication and the home territory. These will consist of corridor passenger carriages ; each cadre train will form two ambulance trains, to carry 400 men each.
109 Evacuation Service. The evacuation service is under the Sanitary Bureau of the Adjutant-General’s Department of each army. The territory in rear of each army is for this purpose divided into three zones, termed the field, lines of communication, and interior, zones, the latter within the confines of the Empire ; in each is established an evacuation committee, and in the two former a collecting point. The localities in which these are formed are determined in the two former cases by the Adjutant-General of the army, in the latter by the Head- quarters Staff, from which authorities the committees also take their orders. Each field or lines of communication committee consists of a colonel or major-general as president, a field officer as assistant, a surgeon, an officer nominated by the road department of the staff, the commandant of the station where it is established, a representative of the Red Cross Society and a staff of personnel as members. Committees in the interior are similarly composed. A collecting point has a staff of personnel attached. The duties of the committees are to arrange for the collection of the wounded and sick at the collecting point, their classifica- tion as transportable or non-transportable, their supply with food and clothing, their transport to the rear, and the pro- vision of the personnel to accompany them. The collecting points are under the committees and the latter work in close connection with the Red Cross Society. VETERINARY. The highest veterinary authority in the field is the Veterinary Inspector of each army. He is placed immedi- ately under the Adjutant-General,* and has a staff of 3 veterinary surgeons and 11 other non-combatants. The Chief Veterinary Surgeon superintends all veterinary measures in the army, and the remainder of the veterinary personnel, in addition to assisting him, has also to perform executive duties with the headquarters Staff. * In 1904-05 he was placed under the Director of Medical Services.
110 An army corps has a corps veterinary surgeon, and each unit is provided with one or two veterinary officials or a veterinary dresser or both, according to the number of horses belonging to it, as detailed for the various arms and units ; in the transport of each is carried a supply of veterinary stores. In the field three classes of horse infirmaries are maintained viz :—(I) Regimental, for cavalry regiments, field artillery, and park brigades, &c.; (2) Administrative, for divisional trains and transport columns, &c. ; (3) Station, upon the lines of communication. The first two categories of infirmary are formed by, and remain with, their units. First aid is given on the battlefield, dressing stations being organized for the purpose. Cases requiring lengthy treat- ment are transferred to a station infirmary. These are maintained at the rate of one per army corps, and accommodate 100 horses each. Each has a staff of veterinary personnel besides the men detailed from the various units to accompany the sick horses. Veterinary surgeons have no special titles, and only rank according to their class in the chin. Uniform.—Veterinary officials wear a F.S. uniform similar to that of a cavalry officer; but the shoulder-pieces are narrower and have silver lace.
Ill CHAPTER X. TRANSPORT, SUPPLY, AND INTENDANCE. Regimental transport. In regimental transport (polkovoi oboz) are carried such stores, &c., as are indispensable both at each nightly halt and when engaged with the enemy. As regards the distri- bution of stores it is classified as (a) company, squadron, or battery transport, and (6) regimental (or battalion) trans- port. Also, when the enemy is near it is divided as regards command and sequence in the marching column into 1st and 2nd Line. The 1st Line transport of a unit, comprising all that is requisite for battle, immediately follows it; the 2nd Line transport of all units, which corresponds to our “ train ” and carries supplies and stores, marches in rear of the whole column. For examples of the composition of 1st and 2nd Lines, see pp. 42, 56. In company, &c., transport, are carried the personal kit of officers and men, and such stores, &c., as are constantly required by a unit; in regimental transport, the general stores of the whole unit, and the personal kit of the regi- mental or battalion staff. Cattle and spare horses also accompany regimental transport, which is commanded, in the infantry by the commander of the non-combatant com- pany, in the cavalry by an officer specially detailed, and in other arms, &c., by a N.C.O. The regimental transport of infantry, cavalry, parks, gendarmerie, medical units, and the staffs of armies or independent army corps is divided into sections, that of other units is not so divided. As an instance, the composition of the sections of the transport of an infantry regiment is given below:— 1st Section ... 1st Line transport. 2nd ,, ... S.A.A. carts not in 1st Line. 3rd ,, ... Company baggage of 1st and 2nd battalions. 4th „ ... „ „ 3rd and 4th „ 5th ... Regimental baggage, spare horses, and cattle.
112 The regimental transport of cavalry regiments and independent battalions (infantry and engineers) is divided into 2 sections ; the 1st Line transport forms the 1st Section, the 2nd Line the 2nd Section. The supplies carried in regimental transport are, in the case of infantry and artillery, replaced from the divisional train. Cavalry fill up from the corps supply column direct. Engineer units carry an increased quantity of supplies in regimental transport, being, like cavalry, unprovided for in the divi- sional train. Divisional and Brigade Trains. Organization.—In time of war each infantry division has a divisional train (divizionni oboz), and each rifle brigade has a brigade train {brigadni oboz) The train carries stores and supplies for the infantry, artillery, and artillery parks of the division or brigade, but engineers carry the corresponding supplies, &c., with their battalion transport. Cavalry have no divisional or brigade trains. The divisional and brigade trains have been instituted in order to ensure unity of command over all that baggage, &c., of the division which is not included in the regimental trans- port or in the parks, to ensure a constant and systematic replenishment of all stores and supplies expended, and to serve as a link of communication between the troops and the nearest sources of supply. In the trains are carried: (a) Permanently, a proportion of supplies as shown on p. 119, such proportion of the entrenching tools as is not frequently required and would burden the troops if carried by them, and a reserve of boots and harness, (6) temporarily, such stores as the commander of the division or brigade may order to be excluded from the regimental transport in order to increase the mobility of the troops. The stores and supplies carried in the trains are divided into two categories : (a) those belonging to regiments and other units ; (6) general stores. A train is divided into two sections; viz., the stores and supplies section (prodavolvstrenuo^veshchevoi otdyet), and the sanitary section, (sanitarni otdyel). Tho first named comprises the carriages carrying the stores, &c., of the train itself, carriages with the entrenching tools and other stores temporarily excluded from the regimental transport,
из carriages with supplies to replace those expended from regimental transport, and the reserve of horses to make good losses in artillery and other draught horses. The sanitary section (see p. 101) consists of one divisional hospital and two mobile field hospitals. If artillery or engineer parks are attached to an infantry division, their carriages, with the corresponding stores, join the divisional train and form separate subsections. The stores and supplies section is divided into five subsections. In each of the first four is carried one day’s supplies for all units and part of the one day’s reserve of preserved vegetables; in the Sth Subsection are the entrenching tools, reserve of boots and harness for regiments and batteries, two days’ preserved meat, the baggage of the staff of the train, stores temporarily excluded from regimental trans- port and the reserve of horses. Each subsection is a separate sub-unit and carries its own supplies and stores.* The object of the subdivision of the train is to permit of a fraction of it, carrying one day’s supplies for the whole division or brigade, being brought up to the troops daily when the enemy is near, while the remainder of the train remains at a safe distance. If an infantry regiment with one or two batteries be detached, the corresponding vehicles with supplies, tools, and boots may be detached from the train and may join the regimental transport of the detachment. In a Siberian rifle division the stores and supplies section of the train is included in the establishments of regiments, &c., and the train consists of a sanitary section only (3 mobile and 3 reserve field hospitals). No cadres are maintained in time of peace, but each divisional staff keeps a list of the officers to be employed with the train in war. The commanders of the sections of the trains are taken from the active list, those of subsections from the reserve. The carriages, equipment, &c., are kept in peace by the regiments to which they correspond in war, those of the 5th Subsection in special intendance depots. The subsections are mobilized by the regiments, &c., in charge of their stores, and are then sent to the collecting point of the train. The men are detailed by the General Staff through the circle commandants, and are usually men of the oldest classes who have served as transport drivers or as cavalry soldiers. Horses are obtained by conscription. An escort of a few Cossacks is always detailed from the half- squadron of Cossacks attached to the staff of the division; but guards, &c., are furnished by the personnel of the train itself. Ina divisional train the Cossack escort consists of 1 uryadnik and 15 Cossacks, in a rifle brigade train of 1 uryadnik and 12 Cossacks. Under exceptional circumstances, a special escort may be detailed by the commander of the division. * Brigade trains being much smaller, all the personnel is supplied from the oth Subsection. (в 10626) н
114 Divisional trains are commanded by colonels, brigade trains by captains. Train commanders are placed immediately under the division or brigade commander. Establishments.—See Appendix X. Uniform and arms.—The uniform is the same as that of the infantry For distinguishing badges on the shoulder straps see Appendix VI. N.C.Os. and buglers are armed with cavalry sword and revolver; transport drivers have hatchets only. Material, supplies, <fc.—The carriages in use are 3-horsed lightened wagons of 1876 pattern, and 2-horsed wagons of 1884 pattern, l-horse carts are mainly used east of Lake Baikal, and would probably be largely used in Central Asia. The supplies carried are calculated for 18,200 men. Boots, 22 pairs per company. Harness, 23 artillery and 10 transport sets. Horse reserve, 5 horses per regiment and battery. Corps supply columns. Organization.—A corps supply column (korpusni prodovol- stvenni transport) forms part of every army corps ana cavalry corps for the following purposes ; (a) regular and systematic replacement of supplies carried in the divisional trains ; (b) the immediate replenishment, when necessary, of supplies and forage in the regimental and battery transport of cavalry and horse artillery ; (c) the replacement of forage for all the horses of the corps. It consists of (1) carriages with the baggage, &c., of the column staff; (2) carriages with forage and supplies to replace those taken from the divisional train and from the regimental transport of cavalry, horse artillery and Cossacks. It is divided into four sections ; in each of the first three is carried one day’s supplies and one day’s oats for all units of the corps ; in the fourth section, a reserve of one day’s preserved meat and vegetables for cavalry and horse artillery, and the baggage of the column staff. Each section is a separate sub-unit and carries its own stores, &c. In time of peace, vehicles and stores are in charge of the corresponding units or staffs, or are stored in special depots. No cadres of personnel or horses are maintained in peace and the method of providing these is the same as in the case of the divisional trains. Columns are commanded by colonels or lieutenant-colonels. In the field, orders for the
116 supply of troops from the corps supply column emanate from the corps intendant, but a corps commander may permit his division commanders to direct requisitions being made upon the column commander direct. It is the duty of the corps staff to keep the corps intendant posted as regards the location of units, and commanders of units posted as regards the whereabouts of the corps supply column. As regards the method of replacing supplies, see p. 120. Establishments.—The establishments are given in Appendix X. When an army corps has more than 2 infantry divisions or 1 cavalry division the strength of the column is increased propor- tionately. Uniform.—As for divisional trains. Half of the men are equipped with axes, the remainder with shovels. Supplies, $c.—The supplies and forage carried in an army corps column are calculated for 40,000 men (biscuit, groats, salt, tea, sugar), and for 4,000 men of the cavalry division (one day’s reserve of preserved meat and vegetables only. A cavalry corps column carries supplies for 8,000 men and forage for 7,200 horses. In addition to supplies and forage, columns carry a proportion of medical and veterinary stores, smiths’ and other tools, and spare harness and parts of vehicles. Transport Troops. Transport battalions. Organization.—Transport troops furnish, or at least form the nucleus of, the general transport in rear of the army and upon the lines of communication, and are placed under the General of Communications of the army to which they are attached ; they do not, as in other armies, furnish cadres for all the transport columns of the army. They carry supplies from the rear to the corps supply columns, from the factory to depots and magazines, and from one magazine to another, carry to the army clothing and artillery, engineer, medical, and general stores, and evacuate sick and wounded. A proportion of them may be allotted to army corps, divisions, or detachments. The transport troops maintained in time of peace consist of European Russia and the Caucasus.— 5 cadre transport battalions, Nos. 1 to 5, each of 4 companies. 1 Caucasian cadre transport battalion, of 2 companies. (в 10626) ii 2
116 Asia.— 1 Kushk cadre transport company. 1 South Ussuri cadre transport company. Upon mobilization, the 6 battalions in Europe and the Caucasus expand into 22 battalions, each company forming a battalion. The battalions are numbered from 1 to 20 and 1st and 2nd Caucasian. Each battalion consists of a battalion staff and 5 transport columns ( Voennie transports), which may be composed either of two-horsed, three-horsed, or four-horsed carriages or of pack animals.* The South Ussuri and Kushk companies each expand on mobilization into a battalion of 5 transport columns. No special scale of transport is published for troops in other parts of Asia, but it is probable that country carts (arbas), and camels and ponies as pack animals, would be utilized. Establishments.—The peace and war establishments of units are given in Appendix X. Supplementary transport battalions. Should the number of columns mobilized by the transport troops prove to be insufficient, supplementary columns are formed at the discretion of the army commander or commander of the military district. No peace cadres are maintained, but they are to be organized in battalions numbered from 23 upwards, similarly to those maintained in peace, and their establishments are the same. Supplementary columns may be military or requisitioned, and a battalion may be formed of military columns alone, or of requisitioned columns alone, or of both combined. For military columns the rank and file are taken from the 1st Category of the Opolchenie. Requisitioned columns are formed of personnel, horses, and carriages hired or requisi- tioned for a period or job. Supplementary columns may be composed of the usual two, three, or four-horsed carriages, or of arbas and other carriages drawn by horses or oxen, or of pack camels. * Little progress has been made in Russia at present in the use of mechanical transport for military purposes, owing to the lack of good roads. Some automobile companies have, however, been formed, and are attached to railway units, see page 87.
117 Establishments.—The establishments of supplementary columns with arbas and other carriages drawn by horses or oxen, and with camels, are given in Appendix X. Uniform.—As for other train units. See page 114 and Appendix VI. Arms.—Sergeant-majors, senior under-officers, and buglers have cavalry swords and revolvers; other combatants and non-combatants have cavalry rifles and bayonets. Supplies.—A. column with wheeled carriage can carry about four days’ biscuit and groats, eight days’ salt, ten days’ tea and sugar for 10,000 men, and three days’ oats for 1,600 horses. A column with pack carriage transport the same proportions of supplies for 4,000 men and 6,000 horses. Rations and forage. The officer is entitled to the same ration as a private soldier, with the addition of 1 lb. of meat and about half a- pint of brandy. The daily scale of rations for a soldier in time of war is :— Biscuit .......... Groats Fresh meat Salt ............. Vegetables Butter or fat Ground meal Tea .............. Sugar ............ Pepper ........... Total... 1 lb. 9’2 oz. (or 2 lb. 4 oz. of bread). 3*6 oz. 14 4 oz. (or 10’8 oz. of preserved or salt meat). 1*65 oz. 9 oz. fresh (or *6 oz. dried). * 75 oz. * 6 oz. * 07 oz. * 9 oz. * 025 oz. . .. 2 lb. 8*2 oz. In addition to the above, a fixed daily allowance of *27 pint spirits, vinegar, and *027 pint citric acid may be issued to tne troops by order of corps commanders. The troops are always provided with a hot meal daily, whether on the march or halted, by means of the field kitchens which form part of the 1st Line transport of each unit. Each army corps staff, cavalry corps staff, company, squadron and battery has 1 field kitchen. An army staff has 4 kitchens; the Commander-in-Chiefs staff has 1 kitchen.
lift The field forage allowance for each horse is :— Oats ......................12-3 lb. Hay ..........................13 5 lb. This allowance is slightly reduced when horses are being conveyed by rail. Supplies in the field. The following tables show the number of days’ supplies and forage which are carried in the field, the various food- stuffs, and in what proportion they are carried in the various lines of supply :—
g о S. § <r> bj CD Cb < cd 04 £ P cr CD* 0> !? 3 co < & s cd g> <Z> c 04 po A 8 о 8 £ Б‘ 04 s e* co £ Groats Food-stuff. I z Z z z Co CO »—• co co 1 CO j On man or saddle. Ы s> to to 1 to to СЛ to to In regimental transport. intry a J-* to ►Й- 4^ >й> In divisional train. 3 p- £ co 1 1 co co CO co co In army corps supply column. d artill I—» to о CO H-» to »—• to I—» to w to о Total days. lery. co co H-* co co 1 co 1 On man or saddle. Ci co to Ci <£> Ci Ci In regimental transport. Engii co 1 1 CO co co co co In army corps supply column. cd a> co >-» to о co to »—• to 1—‘ to w to & Total days. co co )—1 co co 1 co 1 On man or saddle. О co to to 1 to to СЛ to to In regimental transport. kvalry: artil co k—I к—1 co co co co co In corps supply ; column. ind ho lery. 00 о to oc X X X cn | Total days. 3 CD 611
120 Forage. Cavalry.—1 day’s oats on horse, 3 days’ oats in corps supply column. Artillery.—1| day’s oats on horse or carriage, 3 days’ oats in corps supply column. Transport.—3 days’ oats and 2 days’ hay on horse or carriage, 3 days’ oats in corps supply column. Fuel is either issued in kind to the troops, or an allowance is made in lieu. Supplies in the field may be drawn from :— (1) The local resources of the theatre of war, by means of direct cash purchase or requisition. This method is always to be resorted to when possible, and cash purchase is preferable to requisition. (2) From magazines, movable or fixed, formed in the theatre of war by the Intendance Department. This method of supply is resorted to when local resources are deficient or cannot be utilized. When the magazines are upon the line of march of the troops, the latter draw their supplies direct from the magazines. When this is not the case, supplies are carried from the magazines to the troops by means of regimental transport, divisional trains, corps supply columns, and transport battalions. Every man carries 3 days’ rations in his kit bag or saddle bags. This is termed the “ knapsack reserve ” and is divided into two portions. One portion, consisting of 1 day’s rations, is termed the “ expense reserve ” ; the remaining two days’ rations are termed the “ inviolable reserve” (emergency ration). When the troops cannot live upon the country, the supplies carried in regimental transport are drawn upon. If the regimental transport is not available, the expense reserve is consumed, and replaced as soon as possible. The emergency ration must not be touched except by order of the com- mander of the troops. These restrictions upon the consumption of the haversack reserve do not exclude its periodical turnover in order to ensure the biscuit being fresh, and regimental officers are held responsible that it is always fresh and eatable.
121 As already explained, further supplies are carried in the 2nd Line of the regimental transport. The supplies carried by the troops form the 1st Line of food supply. The divisional trains form the 2nd Line. They follow the troops at a distance not exceeding a day’s march. They fill up direct from a magazine, if available and near enough to permit of the column not being separated from the troops for more than 24 hours ; otherwise they fill up from the corps supply column, which forms the 3rd Line of supply. Nothing is laid down as regards the distance in rear of the troops at which the corps supply column marches ; it fills up from the nearest magazine or from the columns of the transport battalion, as may be directed by the corps intendant.* In time of war, the troops will be supplied with meat from herds of animals which will be collected for each army on mobilization under arrangements made by the intendance of the military district affected. Each herd will consist of 250 to 300 head of cattle, or, if of sheep or pigs, in the proportion of 6 sheep or 4 pigs to 1 head of cattle. A “ field expense ” herd will be formed for each army corps, a fortress herd for each fortress, and reserve herds of the number required for each army. Each herd will be superintended and driven by 34 non-combatant rank and file to be drawn from the reserve on mobilization, under an officer. Cattle should be between 2 and 12 years of age and they should not be driven more than 14 miles in one day. Meat may be issued to units on the hoof, or fresh, or salted by the Morgan method. The strength of the expense herds will be maintained by local requisition, or by drafts from the reserve herds, which latter must contain 2 days’ meat for the whole army. Stationary magazines are formed on the lines of communi- cation and in the theatre of war generally, under the orders of the intendance department, and from them the field supply formations replenish theii' supplies, certain magazines being told off to each unit by the intendant of the army. On the march, intendance officials are sent ahead to collect supplies or take possession of any abandoned by the enemy, * So stated in the regulations. But as the transport battalions are under the orders of the General of Communications of the Army, the respective functions seem to require co-ordination.
122 and they make arrangements for the formation of magazines. Magazines are filled either by requisition in the district, by contract, by purchase, or by supplies sent from home or from foreign countries, or by a combination of all these methods. Intendance. The Intendance Department arranges for the supply of food, forage, clothing, equipment, and cash to the army, and consists of a personnel of officials and non-combatant men. At the head of the supply service of an army is the Intendant of tho Army (intendant armii^ whose duties are, in general, to provide for all its requirements m provisions, clothing, money, and other intendance supplies. In addition to a staff, he has at his disposal a reserve of intendance officials, clerks, &c., to provide for the formation of magazines and depots. The Intendant submits to the army commander his plan for the supply of the army, showing what quantity of supplies are required for it, the places and dates at which they must be furnished, the quantities in hand, arranged for, or still to be provided, the amount which can be furnished by the theatre of war, the measures proposed for obtaining supplies, the means of transport required for intendance purposes, and all other statistics and data which he considers of use. The supply of clothing, &c., is arranged for by the intendant in conjunction with the War Ministry, and only such articles are purchased by him on the theatre of war as can be obtained there cheaper than from home. The intendant designates the points at which magazines are to be formed and the method by which they are to be filled, basing his decisions on statements received from the Quartermaster-General as to the distribution of the troops and their proposed movements, and in conjunction with the General of Communications he arranges for the supply of troops, &c., on the lines of communication. It is to the latter also that he applies for transport for his stores. On the basis of the reports furnished by corps and divisional intendants as to the amount of supplies in possession of the troops and in the magazines specially placed under their orders, he makes general arrangements for the replenishments of the supplies of the troops. He is bound to inform the intendance department at Head-quarters (home), the heads of departments of the army staff, and all intendance authorities under him of the measures taken by him, and to see that all supplies provided by government, or obtained locally by requisition, are delivered in the magazines in good condition, in the proper quantity, and at the stated times; that proper arrangements are made for their receipt, safe custody, and issue ; and that all intendance supplies and stores captured from the enemy are properly applied to the use of his own army, he controls the working of all intendance authorities under him, inspects tho
123 magazines and depots when necessary, either in person or by a deputy, collects information as to the resources of the country and the prices current, and, in the case of requisitions being ordered, he prepares plans for the distribution of the territory to units, and for the extent and method of collection of the supplies to be requisitioned, the places where they are to be delivered, and the prices to be paid. The sanction of the army commander must be obtained before requisitions are made. In the event of troops being fed by the inhabitants he fixes the prices to be paid as compensation. The Intendant at Army Head-quarters is the executive official for the supply of all ranks attached to the army staff. The Intendant of the army corps (Korpusni intendant') is directly under the orders of the corps commander, and his main duty is to insure the troops having at all times their full supplies of provisions and forage. He reports the supplies in hand (with the troops, and in the magazines and convoys placed at his disposal) to the intendant of the army, and from him receives instructions as to how they are to be replenished. If the latter cannot issue instructions in time, the corps intendant takes measures for the supply from local resources on his own initiative, reporting what he has done to the corps commander and the army intendant, and he also reports to the former all instructions he receives from the latter. He collects information as to local resources and prices. He supervises the divisional intendants and sends intendanco officials with the advanced portions of the corps to collect supplies, &c., He arranges for the transport of the supplies from the magazines to the troops. As regards captured supplies, requisitions, supply of the troops by the inhabitants, inspection of magazines, and receipt and issue of stores and supplies, his duties are the same, within his own sphere, as those of the army intendant. He receives from the troops requisitions for clothing, equipment, and cash, and reports them to the army intendant, upon which the latter informs him whence these are to be drawn. He furnishes to the corps controller lists of all the establishments under him, the accounts of which have to be checked, and statements of all financial transactions exceeding 5,000 rubles (£500). At the end of the campaign, or yearly, he draws up an account of all the intendance operations conducted by him, and submits it, through the corps commander, to the army intendant. The Divisional Intendant carries out the orders of the divisional commander and the corps intendant as to the supply of the troops of his division, and his duties are generally the same for the division as those of the corps intendant for the corps. He makes daily reports to the divisional commander and corps intendant of the supplies in hand, and of any difficulties experienced in supply matters. He distributes supplies to the troops, and in extraordinary cases arranges on his own responsibility for their provision locally. When the division is on the march, he accompanies its most advanced troops to gather information as to the resources of the country, and to collect Rupplies and make other arrangements for feeding the troops
124 Field bakeries. The number of field bakeries to be attached to each army is laid down in the plan of mobilization, and they are administered by the intendant of the army or by his deputy. They may be either mobile or stationary. In the first case they accompany the troops; in the second they are established at points upon the lines of communication. A mobile field bakery has an establishment of 3 officials, 198 bakers, 79 two-horse wagons, 178 horses, and a proportion of transport personnel. The material consists of 11 sections, each section consist- ing of 2 portable iron ovens. Sections can be detached from the remainder of the bakery if necessary. Four batches of bread can be baked daily, each oven turning out from 1,516 to 1,624 lbs. of bread. At this rate the whole bakery can provide daily from 14,800 to 15,810 nortions, or approximately sufficient for an infantry division.
125 CHAPTER XI. TACTICS. INTRODUCTORY. The Russian Field Service Regulations (ustav polevoi slujbi) of 1912 and the manuals for the various arms* lay down the formations and the tactical principles in use in the Russian Army. These are generally similar to those of the other great European armies, and in this chapter it is proposed to give only a broad outline of Russian tactics, based on the above official regulations and on reports by British officers who have recently attended Russian peace manoeuvres ; and to give in detail such points as march and battle formations, system of outposts, arrangement of billets, camps and bivouacs. The Russian soldier, though brave and enduring, is by nature slow, and the standard of education of the nation is lower than elsewhere in Europe. The best educated men serve as short-term volunteers, qualify as soon as possible for the rank of officer and pass to the reserve. The re- engaged N.C.Os., who are the main assistants of the company officers in training the personnel, have the same character- istics as the rank and file. The result is that initiative is lacking both in the soldier and in the leaders of the smaller * e.g. Infantry Drill (stroevoi pyekhotni ustav), 1908 ; Cavalry Drill (stroevoi ^avaleriiski ustav), 1912 ; Instructions for Field Artillery in battle (Nastavlenie dlya dyestviya polevoi artillerii v boyu), 1912,
126 fire units. The experiences of the Russo-Japanese war showed that the regimental officer too had generally not realized the extreme importance of the principle of the initiative and of offensive action. Consequently the main effort of Russian training at the present time is to instil these principles into all ranks, and the introduction to the new Field Service Regulations lays down: “ Offensive action is the best method of obtaining our object; only thus can we seize the initiative and force the enemy to do what we wish.” “ Every commander and private must display individual initiative in accordance with the situation . . . without waiting for the order of his superior commander.” It remains to be seen how long the national character will take to assimilate and apply these principles. Other causes to which the Russian defeats in Manchuria may be largely attributed were lack of mutual co-operation, insufficient fire preparation in the attack, the misuse of reserves, and the continual splitting up of tactical units. The new Field Service Regulations lay great stress, both in the introduction and throughout the various chapters, on the principle of mutual support; the principle of preserving units intact is also insisted on to a greater extent than in previous regulations. Observers at recent manoeuvres have commented on the lack of fire preparation, and it is doubtful if the bloody repulses in Manchuria have quite eradicated the tradition on which Russian infantry have been trained in the past, which is expressed in Surovov’s maxim : “ the bullet is a fool, the bayonet is the lad.” As regards reserves, it is laid down that a large general reserve is to be retained in the hands of the Commander, to co-operate with the section of the front line which is to deal the decisive blow, but portions of this reserve may be used to reinforce sections of the firing line or to oppose a hostile enveloping movement. The danger of this, leading to sections of the firing line looking for direct reinforcement from the general reserve, which may thus be frittered away before the moment for decisive action arrives, was strikingly exemplified in the Manchurian battles. On the whole, however, the regulations of 1912 mark a great advance, but the improvement in actual training will probably be slow, owing to the low educational standard already remarked on.
127 The following approximate frontages are laid down for the various units in fighting formation :—* Battalion, about 1,200 yards. Regiment „ 2,400 „ Brigade „ 4,800 „ Division „ 2 miles. Army Corps „ 3-4 miles. Infantry. Paces of infantry. The normal quick step of the Russian infantry is about 120 paces to the minute, and the length of the pace is from 28 to 35 inches. No cadence or length of pace is fixed for the double step. Formations of the company. A company may be formed in close order (somknuti stroi), with open files (razomknuti stroi), or in extended order (razsipni stroi). The term “ line ” (razvemuti stroi) is applic- able to either of the two formations first named. When files are open, the interval between them is one pace, or as may be ordered. From 4 to 6 men (2 or 3 files) form a group (zveno) ; from 2 to 4 groups form a squad (otdyelenie) ; from 2 to 4 squads form a section (vzvod) ; and from 2 to 4 sections form a company (rota). Sections are commanded by officers as far as available ; squads by serjeants or other N.C.Os.; groups by the oldest soldiers. The company may be formed as follows :— (i) In line, no interval between sections ; (ii) In company column, at 5 paces distance ; (iii) In column of squads ; (iv) In column of fours ; (v) By sections (po vzodno) ; (vi) In fighting formation (boevoi poryadok). * These frontages were in the 1904 regulations given as :— Battalion, 400 yards. Regiment, 1,000 ,, Brigade, 1,200 ,, Division, 2,400 „ Army Corps, 2 miles.
128 When a company is formed “ by sections,” the sections are disposed in one line, or in two lines, or in echelon at such distances and intervals as may be ordered by the company commander. Each section may, at its commander’s dis- cretion, be formed in line in close order or with open files, in two ranks or single rank, or in column. In the absence of any special order by the company commander the sections are formed in two lines with intervals and distances of about 40 paces, Nos. 1 and 2 sections in 1st line, Nos. 3 and 4 in 2nd line. A company when extended may have some of its sections in the firing line and the remainder in reserve, or the whole company may be extended. The frontage allotted to it must be proportioned to the task which lies before it, the ground, and its numerical strength. For a company at war strength, the average frontage, not including patrols, is from 250 to 300 paces. This is styled the “company fighting zone” (rotni boevoi uckastok), and the sections in the firing line form the section zones of the company zone. Formations of the battalion. The formations of the battalion are : (i) Reserve column ; (ii) Column of route ; (iii) “ By companies ” ; (iv) Fighting formation. In reserve column, each company is in company column ; two companies are in first line at 3 paces interval, the other two are in second line, covering the first at 10 paces distance. In column of route each company is in column of squads or column of fours. The formation “ by companies ” is similar to the formation “ by sections,” given above, for a company. Unless otherwise ordered by the battalion commander the companies are disposed in two lines, at intervals and distances of about 100 paces, the 1st and 2nd companies in first line. The fighting formation of a battalion consists of the com- panies told off to the “ company fighting zones ” (see above) and the companies forming the battalion reserve, or all the companies may be allotted to the company zones. The space occupied by the battalion is termed the “ battalion fighting zone.” The extent of front varies with the number of
129 companies in the fighting line, reckoning at 250-300 paces per company. The battalion reserve is placed either in rear or in rear and to a flank of the company zones, at such a distance from them that it may be able to render timely assistance without suffering needless loss. It may be disposed as a whole or in several portions. Formations of the regiment, brigade, and division. The only close order formation laid down for a regiment is reserve order (rezervni poryadok). In it the battalions are formed in reserve column, and are placed in two lines, the 1st and 2nd usually in first, the 3rd and 4th in second line. The interval between battalions and the distance between lines is 20 paces. The battalions in second line cover those of the first. Several regiments may be drawn up as may be ordered. If no special order on the subject is issued, two, or three regiments are placed abreast of one another, each in reserve order, at intervals of 40 paces. Four regiments are drawn up in two lines, the 2nd Brigade in rear of the 1st, each regiment in the formation given above. The fighting formation of a regiment consists of one or more battalions told off to fighting zones, and of one or more battalions told off as regimental reserve, or all the battalions may be in the fighting zones. Battalions in reserve are in reserve order or formed “by companies.” To the fighting zone of a brigade one regiment or both regiments may be told off. If one only is so allotted, the other forms the brigade reserve, and is drawn up in reserve order. The same principles obtain in the case of a division. Infantry in attack. The principles laid down in the regulations for the infantry advance against a position are very similar to those of other armies. Deployment takes place at 2,500 to 3,000 yards from the enemy’s position, and advance thereafter is by a series of successive lines. As seen on manoeuvres these lines often follow one another at close distances (under 200 (в 10626) i
130 yards) ; the original extension is usually 3 to 4 paces. As a general rule there is as little firing as possible up to 800 yards from the position. In order to facilitate the advance of the firing line, a good fire position should be occupied by a company or battalion somewhat in advance, and to a flank. This unit, termed a “ rifle battery ” (rujeinaya batareyd), keeps up a heavy fire upon the enemy until masked. Volleys are still used up to 1,400 yards at special objects and sometimes at closer ranges. The following is the definition of ranges for the old and new (pointed) bullet:— Middle or effective. Close or “powerful.” Distant. Old bullet ... 2,260-1,150 paces. 1,150-350 paces. 350-0 paces. New „ ... 2,650-1,400 „ 1,400-500 „ 500-0 „ The regulations lay down that attacking bodies entrench when necessary ; but this is not practised on any manoeuvres that have been witnessed by British officers. The bayonet charge should commence at about 50 paces from the enemy’s position. When the attacking infantry cannot reach this point by dint of rushes or crawling, it must advance across the open from the last fire position. The advance is ordered and the men rush forward, cheering and firing while on the move. The advance to the charge may also be carried out without firing, if so ordered by the section commanders. When within 50 paces of the enemy, section commanders order the charge and run in, followed by their men, who cease firing and cheer. The charge may be executed by the firing line alone, or by the company reserve alone, or by both in conjunction. In the second case, the reserve moves up as near to the enemy’s position as possible and charges when within 50 paces of it. The firing line assists with its fire, and when the reserve commences to charge joins in it. In the third case, the company commander points out the object of the movement, gives the direction, and orders the reserve to move up to the firing line by rushing or creeping. The further procedure depends upon the distance from the enemy. If he is within 50 paces, the charge is made direct; if not, by advancing to within 50 paces, as already described. Hand-grenades are to be used in the assault.
131 Infantry in defence. The principles laid down are generally in accordance with those of our own manuals. The most noticeable point is that Russian infantry, when acting on the defensive, are trained to rise and deliver an assault on the attacking troops as soon as the latter apporach to within about 50 yards of the position or commence the assault. On manoeuvres the two forces, attackers and defenders, charge through the intervals of each other’s lines and then continue advancing till ordered to halt. Machine guns. Machine guns in the Russian Army are organized in detachments {komandi\ a detachment of 8 guns being attached to each regiment of infantry and division of cavalry. The fighting unit is, however, the section of 2 guns, and it is laid down* that only in exceptional cases should more than 2 guns be grouped together, while single guns may on occasions be used. With infantry, sections are usually allotted to battalions or to a portion of the firing line, but the commander of the section is to be given only general directions and to retain liberty of action within the limits of his task. Only under very exceptional circumstances should machine guns be withdrawn from the unit (regiment) to which they belong. In attack, the machine guns accompany the first troops deployed and assist in driving in the enemy’s advanced troops and seizing supporting points for the further advance. Generally in the attack they are to be pushed well to the front and used with great boldness. In defence, it is laid down that they are to be distributed to sweep approaches or points such as a bridge or defile. They should seldom be placed in redoubts or positions likely to draw the hostile artillery fire. A proportion may be retained in reserve for emergencies. ♦ titroevoi ustav pulemyetnikh koinand, 1913. (в 10626) i 2
132 Machine guns with cavalry will be used either in pairs, or not more than four together. The fire of 2 machine guns is considered to be equivalent to that of a squadron. These guns may be used up to 2 700 yards’ range for delaying action, but their greatest value is held to be at short ranges. Cavalry. Paces. The paces of the Russian cavalry are :— Walk (shag), 5 to 6 versts (3$ to 4 miles) per hour. Trot (rzs), 12 versts (8 miles) per hour. Canter (manejni galop), same speed as trot, for school purposes only. Gallop (galop), 17 versts (10$ miles) per hour. Field gallop (polevoi galop), 24 versts (16 miles) per hour. Charge, at the horse’s utmost speed. Squadron formations. The squadron is divided into four troops (vzvod) of about 18 files ; a troop is told off in sections (otdyelenid) each of 3 files. A squadron may be formed :—(i) In line ; (ii) in squadron column (vzvodnaya kolonna) ; (iii) in line of columns of threes ; (iv) in column of sixes (kolonna po shesti), of threes (po tri), by files (ryadami) or single file (po odnomu) ; (v) in extended order. Formations of the regiment. A regiment usually consists of 6 squadrons, divided into two divisions (divizicm). The formations of the regiment are :—(i) Line; (ii) line of squadron columns ; (iii) reserve column, i.e., line of squadron columns at 7 paces interval; (iv) column of troops ; (v) double column of troops at close interval; (vi) column of route, i.e., by sixes, threes, &c. Signals. Signals are made with the drawn sword and headgear, or on service with the hand instead of drawn sword.
133 (i) The sword lifted vertically above the head is a pre- paratory signal; (ii) changes of pace or direction and halts are signalled by the commander making the movement him- self with drawn sword held above his head ; (iii) the sword waved over the head to right and left—extend ; (iv) a motion as if to sheath the sword: for a squadron—form squadron column ; for a regiment—form line of squadron columns : (v) Headgear circled round head—collect round commander ; a troop—in line ; a squadron—in squadron column ; a regi- ment—in reserve column ; (vi) Headgear lowered towards right stirrup—dismount ; (vii) The lowering of the sword which has been raised above the head marks the completion of a movement. ,The new training regulations are alive to the importance of developing initiative and resolute action in all ranks. The trooper is encouraged to ride by himself, and “ he must be prepared to fight dismounted with his rifle in his hand as well as any infantryman.” The earlier regulations devoted much space to drill forma- tions and complex evolutions. These have now been reduced to a minimum, and the general principle of move- ments is that the troop follows its leader without special command. The fighting formation of the squadron will, as a rule, consist of two or three troops extended in line, and one or more in reserve. It is laid down that cavalry attacking cavalry may start at the trot in extended order ; at 400 yards from the enemy they should break into a gallop and at 100 yards into the charge, at the same time closing their ranks. In an attack on infantry, the first echelons should be in single rank extended while the rear echelons may be in two ranks in open order. An attack on artillery will be carried out preferably in two extended lines about 300 yards apart, the first in single and the second in double rank. The “lava,” or swarm, formation, formerly used in attack exclusively by the Cossacks, is now adopted for the regular cavalry. The “ lava ” will generally be formed mounted. In the squadron it consists of a wide extension of two or three troops, often in a crescent form, with a reserve (the mayak) 100 to 200 paces in rear. Single squadrons will
134 usually form the a lava ”—in exceptional cases the regiment may do so. The “ lava ” is used to disorganize an enemy prior to an attack, to hinder him in effecting reconnaissance, to screen a manoeuvre, to delay a hostile advance, in the pursuit and envelopment of the enemy, or to break through his outposts and disturb his rest. Fire from the “ lava ” may be delivered individually mounted, but it is now con- sidered preferable to dismount part of the “ lava ” to fire. While mounted action is held to be the principal means of fighting employed by cavalry, great importance is now attached to dismounted combat when the nature of the task involved, or the terrain, renders mounted action in- sufficient or unsuitable. But to fight with the whole body dismounted is considered to be exceptional. When cavalry fights dismounted, a mounted reserve is always detailed. The remainder of the force may go into action either “ normally ” or “ reinforced.” Normally, two- thirds of the men fight on foot, the rest remain mounted and act as horse-holders. When “reinforced” action is ordered, only one man in six is kept back to hold horses, all the men dismount and lances are laid on the ground. When strong fire action is required and the danger of attack on the horses is small, Cossack cavalry may dis- mount the whole of a troop except one man. Horses are tied in pairs, the bridle of each animal being passed ovex* its head, under the girth of the other horse, and then drawn up tight on the cantie. On going into action dismounted the rank and file fix bayonets. (The Cossack slings his rifle just before charging, and draws his sword.) The troop is the fire unit, and may occupy a front of 35 to 70 yards ; depth cannot be expected, nor is a dismounted reserve usual. Wider extension is permissible than with infantry. The attack must be carried out speedily ; the trooper’s ammunition does not admit of a prolonged fire fight, and fire is to be opened at as short range and as unexpectedly as possible. Individual fire will be usual, but reserves in close formation may fire volleys. The ultimate aim of the attack is to get to close quarters with the bayonet. In defence, however, when time is to be gained, fire may be opened at long range to oblige the enemy to deploy. The duty of the mounted reserve is to guard the led horses, and
135 to deal with any counter attack by hostile cavalry. The led horses will usually be disposed in several groups. The necessity for cavalry to act by night, either mounted or dismounted, is foreseen {e.g., in night marches to effect a surprise). The plan of operations in such a case must be of the simplest nature. If rifle fire is resorted to, volleys only will be employed. The main duty of the Russian cavalry is held to be “ to co-operate with the other arms in order to achieve the common object in view.” The idea, formerly prevailing, of independent action has been set in the background and the employment of cavalry in large masses is exceptional. Nothing definite is laid down regarding the subdivision of the duties of cavalry into independent action and the service of protection. The Field Service Regulations state, however, that several divisions may be placed under one commander for some special mission, but add that recon- naissance over a front of more than 30 miles by divisions under one commander is attended with great difficulties. The cavalry allotted to an army corps* for protective duties may be divided between the infantry divisions or used in one body. In the latter case one squadron (or sotnia) must be left to each division. As a result of the experiences in Manchuria, some new paragraphs on cavalry raids have been added to the Field Service Regulations. These state that the conditions of success lie in secrecy and rapidity of movement and the energy and ability of the commander. They should only be undertaken in the intervals between the main operations, or when the cavalry is so greatly superior to that of the enemy that a portion can be spared without jeopardizing the successful fulfilment of the other duties of cavalry. Artillery. Field and mountain batteries of 8 gunst are divided into 2 half-batteries (polu-batareya) commanded by officers, and these each into 2 sections (vzvod). Horse and howitzer batteries of 6 guns are divided into sections only. * Probably one regiment. t A6-gun organization will probably be adopted shortly.
136 For action, a battery is divided into a firing line, com- prising 8 guns and 8 ammunition wagons, a “ battery reserve,” comprising the remaining ammunition wagons, and 1st line transport of one store cart, an ambulance if available, the field kitchen, and the spare men and horses. All other carriages join the 2nd line transport. An ammunition wagon is brought up alongside each gun and the limbers are only drawn upon as a last resort. The tactical unit of the Russian artillery is the division {divizion) of 3 or 2 batteries. In addition to the divisional staff there are added to it for manoeuvre 3 to 4 orderlies (1 from each battery and 1 from the battery reserves). 1 mounted scout, and 1 dis- mounted observer, both detailed from the batteries. The chief features of the tactical handbook for artillery are : the emphasis laid on the necessity for care in recon- naissance before and during action ; the importance attached to observation and intercommunication ; the very distinct limits laid down as to the authority and duties of the various commanders, and the use of mountain artillery in conjunction with infantry. The Russian battery commander is provided with 11 mounted and 18 dismounted scouts, observers and signallers. When action is probable, the artillery division commandei* sends off “ advanced artillery patrols,” composed of parties of officers and scouts from the batteries unaer his command. A patrol consists of 6 to 8 men. These patrols may work with the advanced guard, and it is laid down that their main duty is to locate and occupy good observation points as soon as the advanced guard deploys to cover the arrival of the main body. The communication service is arranged by the adjutant of the division. Great use is made of telephones, but the regulations insist on the necessity of having alternative means of communication. The functions of the various leaders in the chain of artillery command, and their course of action in various contingencies, are strictly defined. Thus, the C.R.A. must get precise instructions from his G.O.C. as to the task of the artillery, general locality in which it is to deploy, the moment when fire is to be opened, the further positions to be occupied if conditions warrant, &c., and, in prolonged
137 fighting, instructions as to employment of the artillery at night. Guns will be detailed to accompany the infantry attack and, when available, mountain artillery will fulfil this duty. These guns will engage hostile artillery and machine-guns, which immediately cover the approaches, they will destroy obstacles in the way of their infantry, and will oppose any counter attack. Three types of artillery position are utilized: open, semi-covered, and covered. Semi-covered positions are those which become revealed as soon as fire is opened. Covered positions are preferred, as they confer freedom of action. As a rule the artillery will come into action in line or echelon ; but two tiers of fire may be used when the ground permits, and howitzers especially will be used in a second line. No more batteries will be brought into action than suffice for the purpose in view. Fire will usually be delivered in short and rapid bursts ; slow firing will continue during the intervals, and ranging will then be checked. The artillery will not hesitate to fire over advancing infantry; and will continue such fire up to the last possible moment. Artillery observers will be detailed to accompany the infantry, and will report when the latter are about to be endangered by the fire of their own guns. The infantry must find means of indicating their position to their artillery by flags or otherwise. Artillery action at night is provided for in the regulations. The operations will often consist merely in taking up and organizing a position in the dark with a view to opening fire at break of day. Artillery will usually fire at night to prevent the enemy’s reserves from reaching the point of attack. Guns will only fire at night when most careful preparations to secure effective fire and the safety of their own troops have been made by day. When a position is to be occupied in the dark, it will be minutely reconnoitred in daylight, and the gun positions, observation points and approaches will be indicated clearly by marks or lanterns screened from the enemy but visible at night. Great importance is attached to the arrangements made for communication at night, both within the batteries and with the observers in front. In defence at night guns may be
138 placed to fire on the approaches which the enemy may be expected to use. The employment of dummy batteries using grenades to give flashes is recommended to confuse the enemy. Searchlights are mentioned as advantageous, but no indication is given as to how they should be employed. Horse artillery will, as a rule, fire from behind cover only when its cavalry is acting dismounted. In defence, care must be taken not to reveal the position of the guns by opening fire prematurely. Marches. The marching pace of Russian infantry is slow, but it must be remembered that the roads in Russia are usually very bad. The following data for calculating marches are given in the Field Service Regulations :— Infantry—2| miles an hour and 13^-16j miles per day. Cavalry—3|-5| „ „ 20—26| „ Transport—2 „ „ Infantry halt for 10 minutes each hour, and in marches exceeding 10 miles for a half-way rest of 1 to 3 hours. Cavalry marching independently make a short halt 2 to 3 miles from the start. No long halt is usually necessary in the case of cavalry. Transport is divided into “ regimental ” (1st and 2nd lines), “ divisional ” (3rd line) and “ corps.” When collision with the enemy is probable, ammunition, telephone and ambulance carts follow immediately in rear of their units ; the remainder of the 1st line transport follows massed in rear of the column. The 2nd line transport follows in a separate column, arranged in the order of units but with all ammunition vehicles at the head. The divisional and corps transport are in a separate column about a march in rear. The regulations say that as a rule not more than one division should march by the same road. The following intervals are maintained on the march :— Between companies and a company and machine-gun detachment 10 paces. >> battalions, squadrons and batteries 25 n regiments and artillery divisions 75 n H brigades 100 n divisions, not less than 200
139 Engineers Artillery Cavalry Infantry The depth of marching columns is as follows :— Unit (with 1st line transport). Paces. 2nd line transport. Paces. Company... ... ... ... ... 80 —— Battalion, in column of sections or fours ... ... ... ... ... 350 — Machine-gun detachment 150 — Regiment of 4 battalions and machine- gun detachment ... ... ... 2,030 620 Rifle regiment of 2 battalions and machine-gun section... ... ... 1,180 600 Brigade ... ... ... ... ... 4,140 1,300 Rifle brigade ... ... ... ... 4,870 2,400 Division (without artillery) ... ... 8,370 2,700 (Squadron, in threes ... ... ... 235 — „ in sixes 135 Regiment, in threes 1,410 120 „ in sixes 810 — Brigade, in threes ... ... ... 2,900 320 Division (with machine-gun detach- ment) ... ... ... ... ... 6,150 650 f Battery, field or howitzer ... ... 690 j „ horse ... ... ... ... 610 90 95 J „ mountain ... ... ... 650 — ] Division of field artillery 2,170 330 i „ howitzer artillery ... 1,460 250 ( „ horse artillery ... ... 1,270 250 f Sapper company | „ battalion (less telegraph com- pany) 1 Telegraph company I Pontoon battalion 120 410 1,000 2,200 180 540 180 2,885 Divisional train of infantry division... 3,220 — Divisional train of cavalry division ... 1,050 — Brigade train of rifle brigade 2,370 —
140 Protection on the march.—The strength of the advanced guard varies from | to | of the force. It includes cavalry, machine-guns, and engineers. When the strength of the advanced guard is greater than 2 battalions, artillery is detailed. In the case of several columns marching on parallel roads each details its own advance guard. The distribution laid down in the Field Service Regula- tions for an advanced guard to a division is best shown by a diagram:— Ш ф ttS л Of SF farva&e A.—Patrols. B.—Advanced parties. C.—Vanguard. D.—Flank detachments. E.—Advanced guard. eoor The vanguard and flank detachments contain infantry and cavalry. When a collision with the enemy is expected, the flank detachments have machine-guns, and are of sufficient strength to enable them to act decisively against the enemy’s flanks. When the column is smaller than a division the arrange- ments are less elaborate. In the case of an infantry regiment (4 battalions) or a cavalry brigade (12 squadrons) the vanguard and flank detachments are omitted. A column of 2 battalions or 6 squadrons only sends advanced parties to a distance of effective rifle fire (1,200 yards). A company or squadron protects itself by patrols only.
141 The principles laid down for the action of an advanced guard commander on meeting the enemy are simple. He shall (1) Ascertain as accurately as possible the strength and composition of his force; its position or the direction of its march, (2) and in accordance with the circumstances— (a) attack, or— (b) cover and ensure the deployment of the main body. Outposts. The protection of a force halted may be carried out according to the distance from the enemy, strength of the force and character of the ground, by outposts (storojevie otryadi), by separately detailed piquets (zastavi), or sentry posts (polevie катаи1г). Sometimes detached observation posts (noblyudotelnie posti") are also employed. In the first two cases the main body must be protected from artillery fire. If sentry posts only are detailed, their task will be to protect the main. body from effective rifle fire. A regular system of outposts (storojevie otryadi) is detailed when the enemy is within a distance of one march (or farther, if the enemy is exceptionally enterprising), and when the troops requiring protection are not less than one regiment of infantry (4,000 men). Outposts consist of one or more outpost companies, and, when there is more than one outpost company, of an outpost reserve (storojevoi reserv). Outposts consist of infantry and machine guns, and cavalry is added to watch the intervals between two systems of outposts if these are not in touch, to furnish detached posts for important points at a distance from the outpost line, for intercommunication, reconnaissance, and carrying reports. From a troop to a squadron of cavalry may be detailed for each battalion of infantry. The commander of the outposts divides the front into company sections of 1 to 2 versts (| to 1| miles), and details any detached posts necessary. The company commander divides his section into piquet sections, not exceeding 4 in number. Each piquet (zastava)
142 is of a minimum strength of a section of infantry with two troopers. One piquet in each company section is called the chief piquet (glavnaya zastava), and acts as a support to the others. Each piquet sends forward sentry groups to a distance of about 600 yards. These consist of not less than 7 men, including the commander. In difficult country, to watch dead ground or important points, small hidden posts (secret i) of not less than 3 men may also be sent out. Sentry groups post a sentry (chasovoi) and a second man (podchasok), who assists the sentry and communicates the result of his observations to the remainder of the group, who are posted a short distance in rear. No man of a sentry group is allowed to go to sleep. Patrols (dozori) are sent out from the piquet to keep up connection or reconnoitre, or to see that the sentry groups are vigilant. In the former case their strength is from 2 to 5 men, in the latter 2 men. The outpost reserve is posted about 1 mile in rear of the piquets. When the enemy is at some distance, or the whole force is less than a regiment, separate piquets are sent out, which are supported in case of need by the inlying piquet (dejurnaya chast) of the force itself. Forces of less than a battalion send out separate sentry groups only, of a minimum strength of 9 men. A countersign (otziv) and a password (propusk), both beginning with the same letter of the alphabet, are adopted, the former the name of a town, the latter that of some military object. The countersign is communicated only to officers, or N.C.Os. performing officers’ duties, and com- manders of piquets and patrols ; the password is given to all troops on outpost duty. On a patrol being challenged by another or by a detach- ment, and asked for the password (Kto idyot? shto propusk?), it replies by asking for the countersign (shto otziv ?). Only general rules are laid down for the action of outposts if attacked, but no piquet must quit the section allotted to it without the order of its commander, no outpost company without the order of the commander of the outposts, and no line of outpost companies without an order from the com- mander of the whole force.
143 Billets and Bivouacs. The regulations as to the occupation of billets and bivouacs are similar to those contained in our regulations. Billets are to be preferred if the military situation permits, as it renders reconnaissance more difficult for the enemy, espe- cially for his flying craft. A unit is always detailed to be in readiness in case of attack {dejurnaya chast). Its strength should be in an advanced guard j to in the main body not more than y5 of the whole force. The following is the method in which bivouacs are arranged in the various arms :— Infantry.—A company bivouacs in company column ; men immediately behind the piles of arms. A battalion bivouacs in reserve column or in line of company columns. The officers bivouac in rear of the rear company. The bivouac of a regiment consists of the bivouacs of the various battalions placed according to the ground, with the machine gun detachment’s bivouac between battalions ; the regimental staff, band, and transport in rear. Cavalry.—A squadron bivouacs in squadron column or in line ; the front of each troop is 35 paces. The horses are fastened heads inwards to the picket rope, a rank on each side ; the picket rope is perpendicular or parallel to the front, according to the slope of the ground, the arms and saddlery being laid down in rear of them. The men bivouac in rear of their arms. A regiment bivouacs in reserve column with 5 paces dis- tance between the picket lines of squadrons. The officers’ bivouac and their horse lines are formed in rear. Artillery.—A battery bivouacs in line with the guns limbered up at half interval (12 paces). In rear of the guns are drawn up in two lines the ammunition wagons and store wagons. In rear again, and perpendicular or parallel to the front, according to the slope of the ground, are stretched two picket ropes, to both sides of which the horses are fastened, heads inwards. The harness, arms, and kits are placed in rear of the outer lines of horses, and the men’s bivouacs are formed outside of all. Forage is placed in the centre of the bivouac.
144 In bivouacs of all arms, mounted services are placed in rear of the infantry. The artillery is placed between the units of the other arms or in rear of them, but the gun parks are always in front of the general line. The intervals between battalions, regiments, and batteries are from 25 to 40 paces. For mounted arms, the places must be so chosen that the horses in going to water do not have to pass through the bivouacs of other troops. Artillery parks bivouac in the same manner as a battery, and transport in one or several lines with 30 paces distance, the horses on lines in front of the wagons and the men in front of the horses. Six paces front is reckoned for each carriage, and an interval of 15 paces is left between every 10 to 15 wagons. The following shows the approximate space occupied in bivouacs by various units: - Paces. Front. Depth. Company ... 20 80 Battalion, in reserve column ... 45 210 „ in line of columns of sections ... 110 100 Machine gun detachment 85 120 Squadron, in column of troops 35 120 „ in line 135 35 Regiment, in reserve column ... 275 200 Field battery 95 160 Horse „ 80 190 or 100 150 Howitzer battery 70 220 Sapper company 80 95 Telegraph company ... 260 185 Wireless telegraph company ... 150 180 M m column of sections ... 70 265 Pontoon battalion 250 330
145 APPENDIX I. PEACE DISTRIBUTION OF T1IE FIELD, COSSACK, AND FORTRESS TROOPS. Shown by Military Districts. Except where otherwise stated :— An infantry regiment consists of 4 battalions. A rifle ,, ,, 2 ,, A cavalry „ „ 6 squadrons. A field artillery brigade consists of 2 divisions of 3 batteries of 8 guns. A howitzer, horse, or horse mountain artillery division consists of 2 batteries of 6 guns. A heavy artillery division consists of 3 batteries of 4 guns. A mountain battery consists of 8 guns. A sapper battalion consists of 3 sapper companies and 1 telegraph company. A pontoon battalion consists of 2 companies. A railway „ „ 4 „ A transport „ „ 4 „ (в 10626) к
ST. PETERSBURG MILITARY DISTRICT. The Governments of St. Petersburg, Arkhangel, Olonets, Novgorod, Pskov, Estlyand, Liflvand (except 1 district), Vitebsk (3 districts), Smolensk (5 districts), Tver (6 districts), Yaroslav (4 districts), Vologda (3 districts), and the Grand Duchy of Finland. Personal Guard of the Emperor, Stationed at Imperial Escort (1st and 2nd Squadrons, Kuban Cossacks ; 3rd and 4th Squadrons,^ Terek Cossacks) (a) ..........................................................S Tsarskoe Selo. Composite Infantry Regiment (2 battalions) (Л) ...............................J Palace Grenadier Company .....................................................St. Petersburg. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. ! Regiments, &e. | Stationed at : о 1st Guard Infantry. 1 1st. i 2nd. 1 Preobrajenski. Semenovski. Izmailovski. Yegerski. | St. Petersburg. j- St. Petersburg. 1st Guard Artillery. St. Petersburg. 2nd Guard Infantry. 1st. Moskovski. Grenaderski. j- St. Petersburg. 2nd. 2nd Guard Artillery. Pavlovsk i. Finlyandski. 1 j> St. Petersburg. St. Petersburg.
(з 10626) к 2 Guard (St. Peters- burg.) 3rd Guard Infantry. J see XXIII Army Corps— Warsaw Military District. Guard Rifle Brigade. 1st Guard Rifle. 2nd „ 3rd „ 4th „ У Tsarskoe Selo. St. Petersburg. Tsarskoe Selo. Guard Rifle Artillery Divi- sion. Stryelna. i 1st Guard Cavalry. 1st. Kavalergardski.* Konni.* j | St. Petersburg. 2nd. Kirasirski Yevo V.* Kirasirski Yeya V.* I Tsarskoe Selo. | G achina. 3rd. Kazachi Yevo V. (c). Atamanski (c). Svodni Kazachi (rf).* 1 J-St. Petersburg. 1st Guard H.A. Division. St. Petersburg. 2nd Guard Cavalry. 1st. Konno-G ren ad ersk i. Ulanski Yeya V. Stari Peterhof. Novi Peterhof. 2nd. Dragun ski. Ilusarski. Stari Peterhof. Tsarskoe Selo. Notes.—(a) Under the Commandant of the Imperial Headquarters. (b) Under the Palace Commandant. This regiment is composed of drafts from units as follows :—From the Guard and Grenadier Corps, 3/8ths ; from line and ride regiments, 5/8ths. (c) Don Cossacks. (d) The Composite Cossack Regiment consists of 1 squadron Ural, 1 squadron Orenburg, a half-squadron Siberian and a half-squadron Trans-Baikal, and of a troop each of Astrakhan, Semiryechie, Amur, and Ussuri Cossacks. * 4 squadrons.
St. Petersburg Military District—continued. j Divisions. 1 Brigades. । Regiments, &c. • Stationed at Guard (St. Peters- burg)— contd. 2nd Guard H.A. Division. St. Petersburg. Independent Guard Cavalry. (see XXIII Army Corps—Warsaw Mili- tary District.) Corps Troops. Guard Howitzer Division. Guard Sappier Battalion (5 cos.). Guard Field Gendarmerie Squadron. Guard Reserve Cavalry Regt. (10 sqdns.). Pavlovsk. У St. Petersburg. Krechevitsski Bks. I (St. Peters- burg.) 22nd Infantry. 1st. j 85th (Viborgski) Infantry. i 86th (Vilmanstrandski) Infantry. Novgorod. Staraya Russa. 2nd. i 1 87th (Neishlotski) Infantry. | 88th (Petrovski) ,, 1 00 Arakcheev Bks. Gruzino. 22nd Artillery. I i Novgorod. 24 th Infantry. i 1st. 93rd (Irkutski) Infantry. 94th (Yeniseiski) ,, У Pskov. 2nd. I 95th (Krasnoyarsk!) Infantry. ! 96th (Omski) Infantry. j Yuriev. ' Pskov. 24th Artillery. 1 Luga. Corps Troops. 1st Howitzer Artillery Division. 1st Sapper Battalion. 7th Pontoon ,, 1st Wireless Telegraph Company.* । Muraviev Bks. Borovichi. ! Ust Ijora. j St. Petersburg.
XVIII (St. Peters- burg.) 23rd Infantry*. 1st. 89th (Byelomorski) Infantry. 90th (Onejski) Infantry. J Revel. 2nd. 91st (Dvinski) Infantry. 92nd (Pechorski) ,, Revel. Narva. 23rd Artillery. Gachina. 37th Infantry. 1st. 145th (Novo Cherkasski) Infantry. 146th (Tsaritsinski) Infantry. St. Petersburg. Yamburg. 2nd. 147th (Sainarski) Infantry. 148th (Kaspiski) ,, Oranienbaum. Novi Peterhof. 37th Artillery. Selischinski Bks. 50th Infantry. 1st. 197th (Lyesnoi) Infantry. 198th (Alexandro-Nevski) Infantry. Sveaborg. Vologda. 2nd. 199th (Kronshtadtski) Infantry. 200th (Kronsh lotski) Kronstadt. 50th Artillery. Luga. Corps Troops. 18th Howitzer Artillery division. 18th Sapper battalion. Luga. St. Petersburg. XXII (Helsing- fors.) 1st Finland Rifle. 1st Finland Rifle. 2nd ,, 3rd ,, 4th Abo. У Helsingfors. Ekenes. 1st Finland Rifle Art. Div. Helsingfors. 1 1 W.T. stations at St. Petersburg and Viborg. 149
St. Petersburg Military District—continued. Army Corps. । i Divisions. Brigades. i 2nd Finland Rifle. Regiments, &c. 5th Finland Rifle. «th 7th Sth Stationed at St. Mikhel. Fredrichshavn. } Viborg. XXII (Helsing- fors)— contd. 1 2nd Finland Rifle Art. Div. Viborg. 1 3rd Finland Rifle. 3rd Finland Rifle Art. Div. 9th Finland Rifle. । 10th 11th 12th f Tavastchus (tempy. L Nikolai st ad). f Rikhimyaki (tempy. 1 Kuopio). f Lakhtis (tempy. t Vil manstrand). Kouvola. Tavastehus. Corps Troops. 20th (Finlyandski) Dragoons. Orenburg Cossack Division (2 squadrons). 22nd Howitzer Artillery Division. 22nd Sapper Battalion. 1 Vilmanstrand. 1 Helsingfors. 1 Miza Pela. | Helsingfors. Troops not in- cluded in Army Corps. 1 I i 6th Field Gendarmerie Squadron. 3rd Air Company. 1st Flying Company. 1st Railway Regiment (2 bns.). St. Petersburg Local Brigade (41 sub-dis- tricts ; 3 local detachments and 42 escorts). i Helsingfors. Sveaborg. ; St. Petersburg. St. Petersburg. i
I Kronstadt (1st class) St. Petersburg Sveaborg (2nd class) Viborg (3rd class) ,♦- i Vologda Local Brigade (28 sub-districts, 13 local detachments and 33 escorts). । Disciplinary Battalion (6 companies). i Medvyed. i FORTRESS TROOPS. ... 1 fortress artillery brigade (2 regts, of 3 bus.). 1 ,, sapper company. 2 ,, mining companies. 1 ,, telegraph section (1st class). 1 ,, engineer depot. 1 artillery depot. ... 1 fortress artillery company. ... 2 ,, ,, battalions (10 companies). 1 ,, mining company. 1 ,, telegraph section (2nd class). 1 „ engineer depdt. 1 ,, artillery l>at tai ion (4 companies). 1 „ mining company.
VILNA MILITARY DISTRICT. The Governments of Vilna, Kovno, Kurlyand. Vitebsk (except 3 districts), Mohilev, Minsk, Suvalki, Grodna (2 districts), Chernigov (n districts), Liflyand (1 district). Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at < 1st. 101st (Permski Infantry. 102nd (Vyatski) „ } Grodna. 26th. 2nd. 103rd (Petrozavodsk!) Infantry. 104th (Ustyujski) Infantry. Grodna. Avgust о v. 26th Artillery. Grodna. • 1st. 169th (Novo-Trokski) Infantry. 170th (Molodechnenski) ,, У Vilna. II I [ 43rd. 2nd. 171st (Kobrinski) Infantry. 172nd (Lidski) j Grodna. I Lida. (Grodna). ; 43rd Artillery. , Olita. 1st. 2nd (Pskovski) Dragoons. 2nd (Kurlyandski) и Ians. 1 Suvalki. * Kalvariya. ; 2nd Cavalry. 2nd. 2nd (Pavlogradski) Hussars. 2nd Don Cossacks. Suvalki. Avgustov. i ’ 2nd H.A. division. 3rd and 4th H.A. Batteries. i Suvalki. Corps ; ' . Troops. • 2nd Howitzer Artillery division. 4th Sapper battalion. 3rd Pontoon battalion. 5th Air Company. ' Vilna. • Grodna. Ko vria. Grodna. 152
Ill (Vilna). 25t.h Infantry. 1st. 2nd. 25th Artillery. 27th Infantry. 1st. 2nd. 27th Artillery. 5th Rifle. 5th Rifle Artillery division. 3rd Cavalry. 1st. 2nd. 3rd H.A. division. Corps Troops.
97th (Lifliyandski) Infantry. 98th (Yurevski) Infantry. 99th (Ivangorodski) Infantry. 100th (Ostrovski) Infantry. Dvinsk. Vitebok. Dvinsk. 105th (Orenburgski) Infantry. 106th (Ufimski) ,, Vilna. 107th (Troitski) Infantry. 108th (Saratovski) Infantry. У Vilna. Vilna. 17th Rifle. 18th „ 19th „ 20th ,, >Suvalki. 3 batteries. Suvalki. 3rd (Novorossiski) Dragoons. 3rd (Smolensk!) LJlans. Kovna. Vilkovishki. 3rd (Yelizavetgradski) Hussars. 3rd Don Cossacks. Mariampol. Vilna. 5th and 6th H.A. Batteries. Kovna. 3rd Howitzer Artillery Division. 3rd Sapper Battalion. 4th Pontoon Battalion. 2nd Wireless Telegraph Company. 9th Air Company. Keidani. Vilna. Olita. Vilna. Lida. 153
Vilna Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at IV (Minsk). 30th Infantry. j 1st. 1 I 117th (Yaroslavski) Infantry. 118th (Shuiski) ,, Rogachev. Slonim. 2nd. 119th (Kolomenski) Infantry. 120th (Serpukhovski) „ J-Minsk. 30tb Artillery. Minsk. 40th Infantry. . . 157th (Imeretinski) Infantry. • 158th (Kutaisski) Infantry. j- Bobruisk. 2nd. I 159t h (Guriski) Infantry. 160th (Abkhazski) Infantry. | Mogilev. Gomel. 40th Artillery. ‘ I Nesvij. Corps Troops. i i 4th Howitzer Artillery Division. 2nd Sapper Battalion. 3rd Transport Battalion. Mohilev. Bobruisk. 1 1 28th 1 Infantry. | 1st. ! 1 1 109th (Voljski) Infantry. 110th (Kasmki) „ J- Shantsi. 2nd. | I ! 111th (Donskoi) „ 112th (Uralsk i) ,, Kovna. Olita. 28th Artilleiy. | Shantsi. i 1st. | 113th (Starorusski) Infantry. 114th (Novotorjski) Infantry. Libau. Mitava. 154
XX (Riga). 29th Infantry. 2nd. 115th (Vyazemski) Infantry. ! 116th (Maloyaroslavski) Infantry. i } Riga. 29th Artillery. i Riga. 1st Independent Cavalry. 19th Arkhangelogorodski Dragoons I 16th Irkutski Hussars. i Mitava. । Riga- I Corps Troops. । I 20th Howitzer Artillery Division. . 1st Heavy Artillery Division. I 20th Sapper Battalion. I 1st Pontoon ,, ! 2nd ,, ,, • 2nd Transport ,, 1st Engineer Siege Park (sections 1 to 4). Riga. J* Dvinsk. J’Kreslavka. Dvinsk. 1 I Trooops not included ; in army corps. 1 i | 1st Field Gendarmerie Squadron. 1 I 4th Air Company. | I 1st Railway Brigade (2nd, 3rd, and 6th 1 ! Railway Battalions). 1 5th Railway Battalion. Vilna Local Brigade (27 sub-districts; 27 escorts). 1 Minsk Local Brigade (34 sub-districts ; 1 34 escorts). ' Disciplinary Battalion (2 cos.). ! Vilna. Kovno. Baranovichi. Polotsk. • Bobruisk. 155
Vilna Military District— continued. FORTRESS TROOPS. Kovno (1st class).......... Libau (till lately 1st class)* Ust-Dvinsk (3rd class) ... 6 fortress artillery battalions (24 companies). 1 ,, sapper company. 1 „ telegraph section (1st class). 1 M engineer depdt. 1 „ artillery battalion (2 companies). 1 „ telegraph section (2nd class). 1 ,, engineer depdt. 1 ,, artillery battalion (5 companies). 1 ,, sapper company. 1 ,, mining company. 1 „ engineer depdt. 1 „ telegraph section (2nd class). 156 * Libau was deprived of the status of fortress in 1909.
WARSAW MILITARY DISTRICT. The Governments of Warsaw, Lomja, Plotsk, Kalish, Petrokov, Kveltsi, Radom, Lyublin, Sy edicts, Grodno (except two districts), Volinya (Kovel and Vladimir districts). Army Corps. iDivisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at i VI (Byelostok). 4th Infantry. 1st. 13th (Byelozcrski) Infantry. Uth (Olonetski) ,, J* Lomja. 2nd. L5th (Schlisselbur^ski) Infantry. 16th (Ladоjski) Infantry. Zambrov. j 4th Artillery. Lomja. 16th Infantry. 1st. 61st (Vladimirski) Infantry. 62nd (Suzdalski) ,, Osovets. Monki. 2nd. 63rd (Uglitski) Infantry. 64th (Kazanski) ,, Sokolka. Byelostok. 16th Artillery. Volkovisk. 4th Cavalry. 1st. 4th (Novotroitsko - Yekaterinoslavski) Dragoons. 4th (Kharkovski) Ulans. Graevo. Byelostok. 2nd. 4th (Mariupolski) Hussars. 4th Don Cossacks. Byelostok. Shchuchin. 4th H.A. Division. 7th and 8th H.A. Batteries. Byelostok. Corps Troops. 6th Howitzer Artillery Division. 10th Sapper Battalion. । 1st Transport ,, Lukov. Ostrolenka. Byelsk.
Warsaw Military District—continued. Army Corps. 1 Divisions. ! Brigades. 1 Regiments, Ac. । Stationed at XIV (Lyublin). 18th Infantry. 1st. 69th (Ry az an ski) Infantry. 70th (Ryajski) ,, Lyublin. Syedlets. 2nd. | 71st (Byelevski) Infantry. 72nd (Tulski) Novo-Alexandriya. Ivangorod. 18th Artillery. i i Ivangorod. i 1st Rifle. I 1st Rifle. ! 2nd „ 3rd !4th „ ! >Lodz. J 1st Rifle Artillery Division. | Lodz. 2nd Rifle. 1 5th Rifle, j 6th „ 7th „ ;8th Radom. Kyeltsi. Chenstokhov. Petrokbov. 2nd Rifle Artillery Division. I Radom. 13th Cavalry. 1st. 13th (Voennago Ordena) Dragoons. | 13th (Vladimirski) Ulans. | Garvolin. Novo-Minsk. 2nd. | 13th (Narvski) Hussars. 1 । 2nd Orenburg Cossacks. j Syedlets. Warsaw. 1st. 14th (Malorossiski) Dragoons. 14th (Yainburgski) Ulans. 1 Kalish. Pinchov. 158
XV (Warsaw). 14th Cavalry. 2nd. 12th H.A. Division. Corps Troops. 6th Infantry. 1 1st. i 1 2nd. 6th Artillery. i 1 1 8th i Infantry. i 1st. 2nd. 1 8th Artillery. 6th Cavalry. 1 1st. 2nd. 6th H.A. Division. । i 15th Cavalry. 1st. 2nd.
14th (Mitavski) Hussars. 14th Don Cossacks. Chenstokhov. Bendin. 21st and 23rd H. Batteries. Warsaw. 14th Howitzer Artillery Division. 8th Sapper Battalion. Ivangorod. 21st (Muromski) Infantry. 22nd (Nijegorodski) Infantry. Ro.jani. Ostrolenka. 23rd (Nizovski) Infantry. 24th (Simbirski) ,, Ostrov. Ostrov. 29th (Chernigovski) Infantry. 30th (Poltavski) „ J- W arsaw. 31st (Alexeevski) Infantry. 32nd (Kremenchugski) Infantry. Skernevitsi. Warsaw. Warsaw. 6th (Glukhovski) Dragoons. 6th (Volinski) Ulans. Ostrolenka. Tsyekhanov. 6th (Klyastitski) Hussars. 6th Don Cossacks. J*Prasnish. 10th and 12th H.A. Batteries. Tsyekhanov. 15th (Pereyaslavski) Dragoons. 15th (Tatarski) Ulans. } Plotsk. 15th (Ukrainski) Hussars. 1 3rd Ural Cossacks. I i Vlotslavsk.
Warsaw Military District—continued. Army Corps. XV (Warsaw)— contd. District. 15th Cav. contd. 1 Brigade. 10th H.A. Division. j i Regiments, &c. 20th and 22nd H.A. Batteries. Stationed at Vlotslavsk. Corps Troops. 15th Howitzer Artillery Division. 15th Sapper Battalion. 3rd Wireless Telegraph Company.* J Warsaw. XIX (Brest- Lltovsk). 17th Infantry. 1st. 65th (Moskovski) Infantry. 66th (Butirski) ,, Kholm. Zamoste. ; 2nd. 67th (Tarutinski) Infantry. 68th (Borod inski) ,, Kovel. ( Vladimir-Volinsk. 17th Artillery. j Vlodava. 38th Infantry. । 1st. 149th (Chernomorski) Infantry. 150th (Tamanski) „ I Brest-Lit ovsk. Kobrin. 2nd. 151st (Pyatigorski) Infantry. 152nd (Vladikavkazski) Infantry. 1 Kartuz-Bereza. Brest-Litovsk. 38th Artillery. Prujani. i 7th । Cavalry. 1 1st. 7th (Kinburnski) Dragoons, 7th (Olviopolski) Ulans. Vlad i in i r- Vol insk. i Grubeshov. 2nd. 7th (Byelorusski) Hussars. 11th Don Cossacks. j У Vladimir-Volinsk. 160
(в 10626) 7th H.A. Division. | 13th and 14th H.A. Batteries. Vladimir-Volinsk. 1st DonCossack Cavalry. 1st. 1 9th Don Cossacks. 13th Don Cossacks. Krasnik. Zamoste. - , 10th Don Cossacks. zna- 15th Don Cossacks. J* Zamoste. 1st Don Cossack Artillery • 6th and 7th Don Cossack Batteries. Division. | Zamoste. Corps Troops. i 19th Howitzer Artillery Division. 2nd Heavy Artillery Division. i 19th Sapper Battalion. J- Byela. Brest-Litovsk. XXIII (Warsaw). 3rd Guard Infantry. 1st. 2nd. Litovski. Kexholmski. i St. Peterburgski. Volinski. } Warsaw. o j* Warsaw. 3rd Guard Artillery. Warsaw. 2nd Infantry. 1st. 5th (Kalujski) Infantry. 6th (Libavski) ,, j- Novogeorgievsk. 2nd. 7th (Revelski) Infantry. 8th (Estlyandski) Infantry. Pultusk. Yablonna. 2nd Artillery. Zegrj. * W.T. Station at Brest-Litovsk.
Warsaw Military District—continued. A riny Corps. Divisions. Brigades. । Regiments, &c. i Stationed at i XXIII (Warsaw)— i contd. Independent Guard Cavalry. Ulanski Yevo Velichestva. (irodnenski Husarski, 3rd Guard H.A. Battery. j- Warsaw. Corps Troops. 23rd Howitzer Artillery Division. 9th Sapper Battalion. Gura-Kalvariya. Warsaw. Troops not included in Army Corps/ Kuban Cossack Division (2 squadrons). 2nd Field Gendarmerie Squadron. Brest-Litovsk Air Battalion (2 cos.). 6th Air Company. 11th Air Company. 4th Railway Battalion. Warsaw Local Brigade (32 sub-districts ; 22 escorts). Warsaw. Brest-Litovsk. Osovets. Novogeorgievsk. Yablonns. 162
(в 10626) FORTRESS TROOPS. Warsaw (1st class)* ... 4 fortress artillery battalions (16 cos.). Novogeorgievsk (1st class) 1 ,, sapper company. 1 „ telegraph section. 2 ,, engineer depdts. ... 6 ,, artillery battalions (24 cos.). Brest-Litovsk (1st class) 2 ,, sapper companies. 1 „ telegraph section. 1 ,, engineer depot. 2 river mining companies (one for the Vistula and one for the Narev). ... 5 fortress artillery battalions (20 cos.). Ivangorod (2nd class)*... 1 ,, sapper company. 1 ,, telegraph section. 1 „ engineer depot. ... 3 ,, artillery battalions (12 cos.). Oso vets (2nd class) 1 ,, sapper companv. 1 ,, telegraph section. 1 ,, engineer depot. ... 2 ,, artillery battalions (8 cos.). Lomja 1 ,, sapper company» 1 „ telegraph section. 1 ,, engineer depot. ... 1 ,, artillery battalion (2 cos.). * Warsaw and Ivangorod have been abolished as fortresses, but the troops have not yet been allotted elsewhere. 163
KIEV MILITARY DISTRICT. The Governments of Kiev, Kharkov, Kursk, Chernigov (except 5 districts), Poltava, Podolya (except 1 district), Volinya (except 2 districts), and 1 district of Bessarabia. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at IX (Kiev). 5th Infantry. 1st. 17th (Arkhangelogorodski) Infantry. 18th (Vologodski) Infantry. Jitomir. N ovograd- Volinsk. 2nd. 19th (Kostromski) Infantry. 20th (Galitski) Infantry. j-Jitomir. 5th Artillery. ; Jitomir. 42nd Infantry. 1st. 165th (Lutski) Infantry. 166th Rovnenski) Infantry. J-Kiev. 2nd. 167th (Ostrojski) Infantry. Cherkassi. 168th (Mirgorodski Infantry. Kiev. 42nd Artillery. Berdichev. 9th Cavalry. 1st. 9th (Kazanski) Dragoons. 9th (Bugski) Ulans. Jitomir. Byelaya Tserkhov. 2nd. 9th (Kievski) Hussars. 1st Ural Cossacks. Vasilkov. Kiev. 9th H.A. Division. 16th and 17th H. Batteries. Jitomir. 1
Corps Troops. 9th Howitzer Artillery Division. 2nd Horse M.A. Division. 6th Sapper Battalion (5 companies). I 6th Pontoon Battalion. 4th Wireless Telegraph Company.* Byelaya Tserkhov. ►Kiev. X (Kharkov). 9th Infantry. 1st. 33rd (Yeletski) Infantry. ! 34th (Syevski) ,, У Poltava. 35th (Bryansk!) Infantry. 2na- 36th (Orlovski) У Kremenchug. Oth Artillery. 1 Poltava. 31st Infantry. 1st. 121st (Penzenski) Infantry. 122nd (Tambovski) ,, J* Kharkov. 2nd. 123rd (Kozlovski) Infantry. 124th (Voronejski) ,, У Kharkov. Ci J O’ 31st Artillery. 1 i Byelgorod. 10th Cavalry. 1st. : 10th (Novgorodski) Dragoons. । 10th (Odesski) Ulans. Sumi. Akhtirka. 2nd. I 10th (Ingermanlandski) Hussars. । | 1st Orenburg Cossacks. Chuguev. Kharkov. 3rd Don Cossack Artillery Division 2nd and 3rd Don Cossack H. Batteries. I J- Chuguev. Corps Troops. i 10th Howitzer Artillery Division. । 7th Sapper Battalion. j Byelgorod. Kharkov. * W.T. stations at Kiev and Jmerinka.
Kiev Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at XI (Rovno). llth Infantry. 1st. 1 41st (Selenginski) Infantry. । 42nd (Yakutski) ,, Dubno. Kremenets. 2nd. 1 । 43rd (Okhotski) Infantry. I 44th (Kamchatski) Infantry. ' । J* Lutsk. llth Artillery. , i I Dubno and Lutsk. 1 1 • 32nd I Infantry. 1st. 125th (Kurski) Infantry. 126th (Rilski) ,, I Rovno. Ostrog. 2nd. 127th (Putivlski) Infantry. 128th (Starooskolski) Infantry. 1 Rovno. 1 Izyaslavl. 32nd Artillery. 3 Field and 2 Mountain Batteries. 3 ,, Batteries. * Rovno. । Ostrog. 1 1st. llth (Rijski) Dragoons, llth (Chuguevski) Ulans. Kremenets. Dubno. Uth Cavalry. 2nd. llth (Izyumski) Hussars. 12th Don Cossacks. Lutsk. ' Radzivilov. i llth H.A. Division. 18th and 19th H. Bts. Dubno. 1 Corps Troops. llth Howitzer Artillery Division. 21st Sapper Battalion. * । By elay a Tserkhov. 1 Rovno. 991
1 1 XII (Vinnitza). 12th Infantry. 1st. 45th (Azovski) Infantry. 46th (Dnyeprovski) Infantry. Starokonstantinov. Proskurov. 2nd. 47th (Ukrainski) Infantry. 48th (Odesski) ,, Kamenets-Podolsk. Mogilev-Podolski. 12th Artillery. 6 Field Batteries. 2 Mountain Batteries. Proskurov. ; Jitomir. 1st. 73rd (Krimski) Infantry. 74th (Stavropolski) Infantry. Vinnitsa. Uman. 19th Infantry. 2nd. 75th (Sevastopolski) Infantry. 76th (Kubanski) Infantry. i Ladijin. Tulchin. 19th Artillery. Vinnitsa. 3rd Rifle. 9th Rifle. 10th „ 11th „ 12th „ ^Jmerinka. j 3rd Rifle Artillery Division. L’tin. 12th Cavalry’. i 1 1st. 1 112th (Starodubski) Dragoons. j 12th (Byelgorodski) Ulans. Volochisk. Proskurov. 2nd. 12th (Akhtirski) Hussars. । 3rd Orenburg Cossacks. Mejibuje. Volochisk. 2nd Don Cossacks H.A. Division. 4th and 5th Don Oossack Batteries. Proskurov.
Kiev Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at XII (Vinnitza) —contd. 2nd Composite Cossack Cavalry. 1st. 16th Don Cossacks. 17th Mogilev-Podolski. Novaya-Ushitsa. 2nd. 1st Lineini (Kuban) Cossacks. 1st Volgski (Terek) „ У Kamenets-Podolsk. 1st Orenburg Cossack H.A. Division. 1st and 3rd Orenburg Cossack H. Bts. Bar. Corps Troops. 12th Howitzer Artillery Division. 5th Sapper Battalion. 10th Air Company. 4th Transport Battalion. 5th У Vinnitsa. } Berdichev. oo Oman, XXI (Kiev). 1 33rd Infantry. 1st. 129th (Bessarabski) Infantry. 130th (Khersonski) ,, J* Kiev. 2nd. 131st (Tiraspolski) Infantry. 132nd (Benderski) ,, J Kiev. 38rd Artillery. Kiev. 44th Infantry. 1st. 173rd (Kamenetski) Infantry. 174th (Romenski) „ J* Kursk. 2nd. 175th (Baturinski) Infantry. 176th (Perevolochenski) Infantry. Chernigov. Glukhov. Chernigov. ।
44th Artillery. Corps Troops. Troops not included in Army Corps.
Nyejin. 21st Howitzer Artillery Division. 4th Heavy Artillery Division. 14th Sapper Battalion (5 companies). 5th Pontoon Battalion. 2nd Engineer Siege Park (sections 5 to 8) Kursk, j- Kiev. 3rd Flying Company. 3rd Field Gendarmerie Squadron. 3rd Depdt Cavalry Brigade. 5th ,, „ Regt. (6 squadrons). 8th „ „ „ (6 „ ). Caucasian Depot Cavalry Regiment (3 squadrons). 2nd Railway Brigade (7th and 8th Rail- way Battalions). Kiev Local Brigade (34 sub-districts and 33 escorts). Poltava Local Brigade (25 sub-districts and 25 escorts). Kharkov Local Brigade (26 sub-districts and 26 escorts). Disciplinary Battalion (4 companies). J-Kiev. Kharkov. Balakleya. N ovogeorgie vsk. Armavir (Kuban Territory). Kiev. Dubno.
ODESSA MILITARY DISTRICT. The Governments of Kherson, Taurida, Yekaterinoslav. Bessarabia (except one district), and one district of Podolya. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. j Regiments, &c. Stationed at 1st. 49th (В restski) Infantry. | 50th (Byelostokski) Infantry. j-Sevastopol. 13th Infantry. 2nd. i 51st (Litovski) Infantry. 52nd (Vilenski) ,, Simferopol. Feodosia. 13th Artillery. Sevastopol. VII | lst* 133rd (Simferopolski) Infantry. 134th (Feodosiski) Infantry. j* Yekaterinoslav. 34th Infantry. 2nd. 135th (Kerch-Yenikolski) Infantry. 136th (Taganrogski) Infantry. Pavlograd. Rostov-on-Don. 34th Artillery. Yekaterinoslav. Corps Troops. 1 . __ I Krimski Dragoons. 7th Don Cossacks. j 7th Howitzer Artillery Division. 1 12th Sapper Battalion. Simferopol. Nikolaev. Kherson. Yelisavetgrad. VIII (Odessa). 14th Infantry. 1st. 53rd (Volinski) Infantry. 54th (Minski) ,, У Kishinev. 2nd. 55th (Podolski) Infantry. 1 56th (Jitomirski) ,, Bender Tiraspol. । 14th Artillery. Kishinev. 170
VIII —contd. 15th Infantry. 1st. 57th (Modiinski) Infantry. 58th (Pragski) „ Kherson. Nikolaev. 2nd. 59th fLyu bl inski) Infantry. 60th (Zamostski) ,, j» Odessa. 15th Artillery. j । Odessa. 4th Rifle. 13th Rifle. 14 th „ 15th „ 16th „ > Odessa. 4th Rifle Artillery Division. Odessa. 1 8th Cavalry. 1st. 1 j 8th (Astrakhanski) Dragoons. 8th (Voznesenski) Ulans. j Tiraspol. Byeltsi. 2nd. ! 8th (Lubenski) Hussars. 8th Don Cossacks. Kishinev. Odessa. 8th H.A. Division. 15th H.A. and one Don Cossack Batteries. Kishinev. Corps Troops. i 1 8th Howitzer Artillery Division. { • llth Sapper Battalion (5 cos.). Odessa Sea Battalion* (2 cos.). Odessa. Troops not included in Army Corps. 1 1 4th Field Gendarmerie Squadron. 2nd Flying Company. Odessa Local Brigade (30 sub-districts, 1 local detachment, and 31 escoits). Disciplinary Battalion (6 cos.). Odessa. Sevastopol. Kherson. ♦ This battalion is intended to provide technical assistance in the embarkation and disembarkation of troops
Odessa Military District--continued. FORTRESS TROOPS. Sevastopol (2nd class).... 2 fortress artillery battalions (8 cos.). 1 2 1 1 Kerchf (3rd class) 1 1 Ochakov (3rd class) 1 1 1 Bender 1 ,, sapper company. ,, mining companies. „ telegraph section (2nd class). „ engineer depdt. r-• ,, artillery company. ,, engineer depdt. ,, artillery battalion (5 cos.). ,, mining company. „ engineer depot. ,, artillery company (to expand in war to 3 cos.). t The fortress of Kerch has been abolished, but its troops have not yet been allotted elsewhere.
MOSCOW MILITARY DISTRICT. The Governments of Moscow, Smolensk (except 5 districts), Tver (except 6 districts), Yaroslav (except 4 districts), Vologda (except 3 districts), Kostroma, Vladimir, Nijegorod, Ryazan, Tambov, Voronej, Orel, Tula, Kaluga, Penza (3 districts), and Vyatka (2 districts). Army Corps. Divisions. 1 Brigades. ! Regiments, Ac. Stationed at Grenadier (Moscow). 1st Grenadier. 1st. 1st (YekaterinoslavskD Grenadiers. 2nd (Rostovski) Grenadiers. Moscow. 2nd. 3rd (Pernovski) Grenadiers. 4th (Nyesvijski) „ У Moscow. 1st Grenadier Artillery. Moscow. 2nd Grenadier. 1st. 5th (Kievski) Grenadiers. 6th (Tavricheski) ,, ^Moscow. 2nd. 7th (Samogitski) Grenadiers. 8th (Moskovski) ,, Moscow. Tver. 2nd Grenadier Artillery. Pavlovskaya. 1st Cavalry. 1st. 1st (Moskovski) Dragoons. 1st (St. Petersburgski) Ulans. Tver. Rjev. 2nd. 1st (Sumski) Hussars. 1st Don Cossacks. J Moscow. 1st H.A. Division. 1st and 2nd Howitzer Batteries. Tver. Corps Troops. Grenadier Howitzer Artillery Division. Grenadier Sapper Battalion. 6th Don Cossack Independent Squadron. Moscow. Boyorodsk. 173
Moscow Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, £c. Stationed at V (Voronej). 7th Infantry. 1st. 25th (Smolensk!) Infantry. 26th (Mogilevski) ,, j* Voronej. 2nd. 27th (Vitebsk!) Infantry. 28th (Polotski) ,, j* Tambov. 7th Artillery. Tambov. 10th Infantry. 1st. 1 37th (Yekaterinburgski) Infantry. 1 38th (Toljolski) Infantry. yNijni Novgorod. j 2nd. 39th (Tomski) Infantry. ( 40 (Kolivanski) ,, Kozlov. Morshansk. 10th Artillery. Nijni Novgorod. ' 3rd Independent Cavalry. 1 I 16th (Novoarkhangelski) Ulans. 1 17th (Novomirgorodski) ,, Voronej. Novokhopersk. Corps Troops. 1 ( 5th Howitzer Artillery Division. 1 I 23rd Sapper Battalion. Serpukhov Morshansk. 1st Infantry. ; . f | 1st (Nevski) Infantry. ; lsl- 2nd (Sotiski) Roslavl. Smolensk. <>т л 1 3rd (Xarvski) Infantrj’. ; 1 4th (Koporski) ,, j* Smolensk. । 1st Artillery. ' Smolensk.
XIII (Smolensk). 1st. 141st (Mojaiski) Infantry. i 142nd (Zvenigorodski) Infantry. у Orel. 36th Infantry. 2nd. 143rd (Dorogobujski) Infantry. 144th (Kashirski) Infantry. j’Beyansk. 36th Artillery. Karachev. 2nd Independent Cavalry. 17th (Chernigovski) Hussars. 18th (Nyejinski) ,, Orel. Yelets. Depot, H.A. Division. 2 batteries. Orel. Corps Troops. 13th Howitzer Artillery Division. 5th Heavy Artillery Division. 13th Sapper Battalion. Gjatsk. Bryansk. Smolensk. 1 3rd Infantry. i 1st. 9th (Ingennanlandski) Infantry. 10th (Novoingermanlandski) Infantry. Kaluga. 2nd. llth (Pskovski) Infantry. 12th (Velikolutski) Infantry } Tula. 3rd Artillery. Kaluga. XVII (Moscow). ! j 35th j Infantry. 1st. 137th (Nyejinski) Infantry. 138th (Bolkhovski) ,, j- Ryazan. 2nd. 139th (Morshanski) Infantry. 140th (Zaraiski) ,, : Yegorevsk. ’ Skopin. 35th Artillery. Ryazan.* 1 Corps j Troops. 1 17th Howitzer Artillery Division. 1 3rd Heavy Artillery Division. | 17th Sapper Battalion. 1 Kolomna. I Vyazma. j Saraisk. * 3 batteries, Kolomna. 175
Moscow Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at XXV (Moscow). 3rd Grenadier. 1st. 9th (Sibirski) Grenadiers. 10th (Malorossiski) Grenadiers. ^Vladimir. 2nd. 11th (Fanagoriski) Grenadiers. 12th (Astrakhanski) ,, Moscow. 3rd Grenadier Artillery. Rostov. 46th Infantry. 1st. 181st (Ostrolenski) Infantry. 182nd (Grokhovski) ,, Yaroslavl. Ribinsk. 2nd. 183rd (Pultuski) Infantry. 184th (Varshavski) ,, Kostroma. Shuya. 46th Artillery. Yaroslavl. Corps Troops. 25th Howitzer Artillery Division. 25th Sapper Battalion. । Serpukhov. Staritza. Troops not included in Army Corps^ 1st Depdt Cavalry Brigade. [ 2nd Depot Cavalry Regiment (6 sqdns.) ( 4th 16th „ 2nd Reserve Cavalry Brigade, fist ,, ,, S 3rd l7th Voronej. Ostrogojsk. Novo-Pokrovskee. Borisoglyebsk. Tambov. Sizran. Kirsanov. Tambov.
ts К
Moskow Local Brigade (43 sub-districts and 42 escorts). Tambov Local Brigade (39 sub-districts and 39 escorts). Smolensk Local Brigade (42 sub-districts and 42 escorts). Yaroslavl Local Brigade (27 sub-districts and 27 escorts). Disciplinary Battalion (4 companies.) Voronej.
KAZAN MILITARY DISTRICT. The Governments of Kazan, Vyatka (except 2 districts),iPerm, Orenburg, Ufa, Samara, Astrakhan, Saratov, Penza (except 3 districts) and Simbirsk and the Ural and Turgai Provinces. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. ! 1 Stationed at XVI (Kazan). 41st Infantry. 1st. 161st (Alexandrojiolski) Infantry. ' 162nd (Akhaltsikhski) ,, | j* Kazan. 2nd. 163rd (Lenkoransko-Nasheburgski) Inf. 164th (Zakatalski) Infantry. j-Simbirsk. 41st Artillery. тг 0° Kazan. 45th Infantry. 1st. 177th (Izborski) Infantry. | 178th (Vendenski) Infantry. । J- Penza. 2nd. 179th (Ust-Dvinski) Infantry. 180th (Vindavski) Sizran. Saransk. 45th Axtillery. 1 Penza. 47th Infantry. 1st. ! 185th (Bashkadiklarski) Infantry. | 186th (Aslanduzski) ,, | Saratov. 2nd. ! 187th (Avarski) Infantry. • 188th (Karsski) ,, Tsaritsin. Saratov. 47th Artillery. i Saratov.
(в 10626) М 2 5th Cavalry. 1st. 2nd. 5th II.A. Division. Corps Troops. 48th Infantry. 1st. 2nd. 48th Artillery. 1st. XXIV (Samara). 49th Infantry. 2nd. 1 49th Artillery. Corps Troops.
5th (Kargopolski) Dragoons. 5th (Litovski) Ulans. Kazan. Simbirsk. 5th (Alexandriski) Hussars. 5th Don Cossacks. Samara. Saratov. 9th and 10th H.A. Batteries. Samara. 16th Howitzer Artillery Division. 16th Sapper Battalion. Penza. Kazan. 189th (Izinailski) Infantry. 190th (Ochakovski) Infantry. Samara. Ufa. 191st (Largo-Kagulski) Infantry. 192nd (lliminski) Infantry. j> Orenburg. Samara. Jp 193rd (Sviyajski) Infantry. 194th (Troitsko-Sergievski) Infantry. Vyatka, j Perm. । 195th (Orovaiski) Infantry. 196th (Insarski) „ Yekaterinburg. Zlatoust. Perm. 1st Independent Orenburg Cossack Squadron. 2nd Independent Orenburg Cossack Squadron. 24th Howitzer Artillery Division. 24th Sapper Battalion. Orenburg. Kustanai. Orenburg. Samara.
Kazan Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at Troops not included in Army Corps. 1st Astrakhan Cossacks (2 squadrons).* Kazan Local Brigade (27 sub-districts, 1 detachment, and 27 escorts). Saratov Local Brigade (21 sub-districts and 21 escorts). Perm Local Brigade (21 sub-districts, 22 detachments, and 22 escorts). Orenburg Local Brigade (11 sub-districts, 8 detachments, and 11 escorts). Ural Province Local Brigade (3 sub- districts and 3 detachments). Turgai Local Brigade (3 sub-districts and 4 detachments). ' Orenburg Cossack Local Brigade (3 de- tachments). Disciplinary Detachment. Astrakhan, Orenburg. Attached to 6th Cavalry Division. 180
COSSACK RESERVE TROOPS. Orenburg Cossacks. 2nd Category. 3rd Category. 7th to 12th Regiments Orenburg Cossacks 4th to 6th Orenburg H. Batteries 13th to 18th Regiments Orenburg Cossacks 36 squadrons. ... 18 guns. 36 squadrons. Ural Cossacks. 4th to 7th Regiments Ural Cossacks 8th and 9th Regiments Ural Cossacks (4 squadrons) ... Astrakhan Cossacks. 2nd Regiment Astrakhan Cossacks 3rd „ „ ,, 24 squadrons. 8 4 4 squadrons. DON PROVINCE. 1st to 6th Cossack Independent Squadrons. Cossack Reserve Troops- Don Cossacks. 18th to 34th Regiments Don Cossacks .............. 35th „ 52nd ,, ,, ,, ............ 7th „ 36th Don Cossack Independent Squadrons ... 8th „ 14th „ „ H. Batteries ................ 15th „ 21st „ „ „ ............ 2nd Category, 102 squadrons. 30 squadrons. 42 guns. 3rd Category. 108 squadrons. 42 guns.
CAUCASUS MILITARY DISTRICT. The Governments of Tiflis, Baku, Erivan, Yelizavetpol, Kutais, Stavropol and the Black 8ea ; the Kuban, Terek, Daghestan, Kars, and Batum Provinces and the independent districts of Zakatali and Sukhum. Headquarters—Tiflis. Army Con>s. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, drc. Stationed at 1st Caucasian 20th Infantry. 1st. 77th (Tenginski) Infantry. 78th (Navaginski) „ 1 Akhaltsikh. Akhalkalaki. 2nd. 79th (Kurinski) Infantry. 80th (Kabardinski) Infantry. j* Kars. 20th Artillery. 3 field and 3 mountain batteries. ( Akhaltsikh and 1 Akhalkalaki. 39th Infantry. 1st. 153rd (Bakinski) Infantry. 1 154th (Deibentski) Infantry. J Alexandropol. 2nd. 155th (Kubinski) Infantry. [ 1 Sarikam{8h 150th (Yelizavetpolski) Infantry. | J&ankami8£u 39th Artillery. | Alexandropol.* 1st Caucasian Rifle. 1st Caucasian Rifle. 11 Tiflis 2nd ,, ,, J 1 3rd ,, Yelizavetpol. 4th ,, „ Gori. 1Т1П18). 182
1st Caucasian Rifle Artillery Division. 1st Kuban Cossack Infantry 1st. 1st Caucasian Cossack Cavalry. 2nd. 1st Caucasian Cossack H.A. Division. Corps Troops. 1st. Caucasian Grenadier. 2nd. Caucasian Grenadier Art. 1st. 51st Infantry. 2nd. 51st Artillery. * 3 batteries, Djelaus.
Gombori. 1st to 6th Kuban Cossack Infy. Bns. Yekaterinodar. Various. 1st Kubanski (Kub.) Cossacks. 1st Umanski ,, „ Karakurt. Kars. 1st Khoperski (Kub.) Cossacks. 1st Gorsko-Mozdokski (Ter.) Cossacks. Kutais. Olti. 2nd Kuban Cossack H. Batt. (Saikamish) and 1st Terek Cossack H. Batt. j* Akhalkalaki. 1st Caucasian Howitzer Artillery Division. 1st Caucasian Sapper Battalion. | Caucasian Wireless Telegraph Company.! 1 Caucasian Engineer Siege Park. Ardahan. ^•Tiflis. 13th (Yerivanski) Grenadiers. 14th (Gruzinski) ,, Manglis. Byeli Klyuch. 15th (Tiflisski) Grenadiers. 16th (Mingrelski) Grenadiers. j-Tiflis. Tiflis. 201st (Potiski) Infantry. 202nd (Goriski) ,, j* Kutais. 203rd (Sukhumski) Infantry. 204th (Ardahano-Mikhailovski) Infantry. Sukhum. Batum. 5 field and 3 mountain batteries. Kutais and Gori. t W.T. stations at Tiflis and Kars. 183
Caucasus Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments. Ac. I 1 Stationed at 2nd Caucasian (Tiflis). 2nd Caucasian Rifle. 1 1 5th Caucasian Rifle. I 6th 7th 8th j»Erivan. Alexandropol. Djelal Ogli. 2nd Caucasian Rifle Artillery Division. Caucasian Cavalry. 1st. ! 16th (Tverski) Dragoons. 17th (Nijegorodski) Dragoons. Tsarskie Kolodtsi. Tiflis. 2nd. 18th (Syeverski) Dragoons. 1st Sunjensko - Vlad ikav к azski (Ter.) Cossacks. Alexandropol. j* Khan Kendi. 2nd Caucasian Cossack Cavalry. 1st. 1st Chernomorski (Kub.) Cossacks. 1st Poltavski (Kub.) Cossacks. Djelal Ogli. Kinakiri. 2nd. 1st Labinski (Kub.) Cossacks. 1st Zaporojski (Kub.) Cossacks. Yelenendorf. Kagizman. 2nd Caucasian Cossack Artillery Division. 1st Kuban Cossack Battery. 5th Erivan. Kinakiri. Corps Troops. 2nd Caucasian Howitzer Art. Division. 2nd ,, Sapper Battalion. Caucasian Transport Battalion. Djelal Ogli. } Tiflis. 184
3rd Caucasian (Vladikav- kaz). 21st Infantry. 1st. 2nd. 21st Artillery. 52nd Infantry. 1st 2nd. 52nd Artillery. 3rd Caucasian Cossack Cavalry. 1st. 2nd. 3rd Caucasian Cossack H.A. Division. Corps Troops. Troops not included in Army Corps.
81st (Apsheronski) Infantry. 82nd (Dagestanski) ,, Vladikavkaz. Grozni. 83rd (Samarski) Infantry. 84th (Shirvanski) Infantry. Yekaterinodar. Pyatigorsk. 3 batteries Vozdvijenskaya. Vladikavkaz. 205th (Shemakhinski) Infantry. 2U6th (Salyanski) Infantry. Deshlagar. Baku. 207th (Novobayazetski) Infantry. 208th (Loriski) Infantry. Khan-Shura. Khasav-Yurt. 3 field and 3 mountain batteries. Khan-Shura and Kusari. 1st Yekaterinodarski (Kub.) Cossacks. Oset Horse Division (2 squadrons). Yekaterinodar. Stavropol. 1st Kizlyaro-Grebenski (Ter.) Cossacks. Daghestan Horse. j Grozni. 1 Khan-Shura. 3rd Kuban Cossack, H. Battery. 2nd Maikop. Mozdok. 3rd Caucasian Howitzer Art. Division. 3rd ,, Sapper Battalion. Pyatigorsk. Vozdvijenskaya. 5th Field Gendarmerie Squadron. 1st Caucasian Bailway Battalion. 2nd »> >» »» Caucasian Air Company. Vladikavkaz Local Brigade (14 sub-districU and 8 detachments). Tiflis Local Brigade (14 sub-districts and 2 detachments). Tiflis. Tiflis. Kars. Kars. Disciplinary Battalion (4 companies). Y ekaterinograd. 185
Caucasus Military District— continued. COSSACK RESERVE TROOPS. Kuban Cossacks. 7th to 12th Kuban Cossack Infantry Battalions 13th „ Ibth 11 Kuban Cossack Cavalry Regiments ........... 11 2nd Category. 6 battalions. 66 squadrons. 3rd Category. 6 battalions. 66 squadrons. Terek Cossacks, 4 Terek Cossack Cavalry Regiments 4 „ 21 squadrons. 16 squadrons. 186 FORTRESS TROOPS. Kars (3rd class)................. Mikhailovsk (Batum) (3rd class)* ... Alexandropol .................... 4 posts in Daghestan............. 4 3 fortress artillery battalions (12 companies). 1 —’---------------- 1 2 1 1 engineer company. ,, depot. artillery battalions (7 companies). sapper company. engineer depdt. artillery company. ,, companies. * Has been abolished as a fortress, but troops not yet allotted elsewhere.
TURKISTAN MILITARY DISTRICT. The Provinces of Trans-Caspia, Sir Darya, Fergana, Samarkand, and Semiryechie, and the Department of the Amu Darya. * * * § Headquarters—Tashkent. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at 1st Turkistan (Tashkent). 1st Turkistan Rifle. 1st Turkistan Rifle. 2nd 3rd 4th ►Tashkent.* 1st Turkistan Rifle Artil- lery Division. 2 field and 1 howitzer battery. i Tashkent.! 2nd Turkistan Rifle. 5th Turkistan Rifle. 6th 7th 8th Samarkand. 2j Charjui.t Skobelev.g 2nd Turkistan Rifle Artil- lery Division. 2 field and 1 mountain batteries. Skobelev. 3rd Turkistan Rifle. 9th Turkistan Rifle. 10th 11th „ 12th j* Termez. Kerki. Samarkand. i '-----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------1 * 1 battalion of 1st Turkistan Rifle Regiment on detachment at Karalinsk, Perovsk, Chimkent, and Aulieata. I battalion ef 2nd Turkistan Rifle Regiment on detachment in Semiryechie. t Howitzer battery at Vyerni. t 1 battalion on detachment at Petro-Alexandrovsk. § 8th Turkistan Rifle Regiment has 1 battalion at Andijan and 2 companies at Kashgar.
Turkistan Militart District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, &c. Stationed at 1st Turkistan —contd. 3rd Turkistan Rifle Artil- lery Division. 2 field and 1 mountain batteries. | Termez. 1st Turkistan Cossack Cavalry. 1st. 2nd Ural Cossacks. 4th Orenburg Cossacks.* | 1st Semiryechie Cossacks. ! Samarkand. Kerki. Katta Kurgan. 2nd. 5th Orenburg Cossacks (4 sqdns.). j 6th ,, „ „ I Tashkent. Skobelev. Turkistan Horse Mountain Battery. 1 2nd Orenburg Cossack H. Battery. I Samarkand. Kerki. Corps Troops. 1st Turkistan Sapper Battalion (5 cos.). j Turkistan Pontoon Company. | Tashkent. Termez. 2nd Turkistan (Aakhabad). 4th Turkistan Rifle. 13th Turkistan Rifle. 14th 15th 16th ^Merv.f J-Kushk. 4th Turkistan Rifle Artil- lery Division. 2 field batteries, 1 mountain battery. Merv. 5th Turkistan Rifle. 17th Turkistan Rifle. 18th 19th ^-Askhabad.J 5th Turkistan Rifle Artil- lery Division. Askhabad.
Transcaspian Cossack Cav* airy. 1st Tamanski (Kuban) Cossacks. 1st Kavkazki (Kuban) Cossacks. Kashi (near Askha- bad).§ Merv.ll Turkoman Irregular Horse Division (2 sqdns.). Kashi.^J 4th Kuban Cossack H.A. Battery. Kaakhka. Corps Troops. 2nd Turkistan Sapper Battalion (5 cos.). Kushk Transport Company. Merv. Kushk. Troops not included in Army Corps. । Disciplinary Company. Turkistan Local Brigade (15 districts, 4 detachments, 8 escorts). Tashkent. [ In Semiryechie— j 6th Turkistan Rifle. I 20th Turkistan Rifle. 21st 22nd Vyerni.** Djarkent. К opal, ft co : 6th Turkistan Rifle Artil- lery Division. 1 Held and 1 mountain battery. Vyemi. : Siberian Cossack Cavalry. 1st Siberian Cossacks. 2nd j-Djarkend.tt * 1 or 2 squadrons at Termez, 1 squadron at Petro-Alexandrovsk, 1 squadron Nukus. t 13th Turkistan Rifle Regiment has 1 battalion in Persia, 14th Turkistan Rifle Regiment has 1 battalion at Sarakhs, t 18th Turkistan Rifle Regiment has 2 companies at Krasnovodsk, 1 company at Fort Alexandrovsk and 1 company at Chikishlyar, 19th Turkistan Rifle Regiment has 1 battalion in Persia. § 3 squadrons in Persia. I 1 squadron at Kushk, 1 squadron at Pul-i-Khatun, 1 squadron at Takhta Bazar. 51 1 squadron in Persia. ♦♦ 1 company at Pishpek, 1 company at Narin. it 1 company at Bakhti, 1 company at Sergiopol, 1 company at Lepsinsk. tt 1st Siberian Cossack Regiment has 1 squadron at Koldjata and 1 squadron at Vycrni, 2nd Siberian Cossack Regiment has 2 squadrons at Kuldja, 1 squadron at Bakhti and 1 squadron at Narin.
Turkistan Military District—continued. COSSACK RESERVE TROOPS. Semiryechie Cossacks. 2nd Semiryechie Cossacks 3rd Semiryechie Cossacks 2nd Category. 4 3rd Category. 4 190 FORTRESS TROOPS. Kushk Ord class) Tashkent ... Samarkand Skobelev ... Termez Kerki ... Fortress Artillery Battalion (3 companies). ... 1 company, Turkistan Fortress Artillery. ••• 1 »» »» »» »» ... 1 ... 1 company, Fortress Artillery.
OMSK MILITARY DISTRICT.* The Governments of Tobolsk and Tomsk and the Akmolinsk and Semipalatinsk Provinces. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, <&c. I 1 Stationed at Uth Siberian Rifle. 1st. 41st Siberian Rifle (4 bns.). i 42nd „ 1 N ovo-N ikolaevsk. Tomsk. 2nd. 43rd Siberian Rifle (4 bus.). I 44th „ „ 1 У Omsk. llth Siberian Rifle Artil- lery. 3 batteries at Novo-Nikolaevsk. Omsk. Siberian Independent Howitzer Battery. ,, ,, Mountain „ J* Tomsk. Troops not included in the 11th Siberian Rifle. 3rd Siberian Cossack. 4th Siberian Sapper Battalion. Zaisan. Omsk. Omsk Local Brigade (18 sub-districts, 24 detachments, and 8 escorts). Disciplinary Company. Omsk. COSSACK RESERVE TROOPS. Siberian Cossacks. 4th to 6th Regiments, Siberian Cossacks ... 7th to 9th „ „ „ Irkutsk and Krasnoyarsk Cossack Divisions 2nd Category. ... 18 squadrons. 2 3rd Category. 18 squadrons. 2 * A considerable part of the troops in the Omsk Military District is on detachment at Kobdo.
IRKUTSK MILITARY DISTRICT.* Governments of Irkutsk and Yenlssel and the Yakutsk and Trans-Baikal Provinces. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. Regiments, Ac. Stationed at 2nd Siberian (Chita). 4th Siberian Rifle. 1st. 13th Siberian Rifle (4 battalions). 14th „ „ j- Chita. 2nd. 15th Siberian Rifle (4 battalions). 16th Dauriya. Stryetensk. 4th Siberian Rifle Artillery. 4th Siberian Rifle Field Artillery Park. 4th Siberian Rifle Mountain Artillery Park. \ Peschanka (near J Chita).) Nerchinsk. to 5th Siberian Ride. 1st. 17th Siberian Rifle (4 battalions). 18th ,, 1 Berezovka (near J Verkneudinsk). 2nd. 19th Siberian Rifle (4 battalions). 20th Berezovka. Troitskosavsk. 5th Siberian Rifle Artillery. 6 batteries. 5th Siberian Rifle Field Artillery Park. Berezovka. Trans-Baikal Cossack Cav. 1st Verkhneudinski (T.B.) Cossacks. 1st Chitinski (T.B.) Cossacks. 1st Argunski (T.B.) Cossacks. Troitskosavsk. Chita. Tsurukhaitui. Trans-Baikal Cossack H.A. Division. 1st and 2nd (T.B.) Cossack H. batteries ; latter at Troitskosavsk. Tsurukhaitui.
(в 10626) Corps Troops. 2nd Siberian Howitzer Artillery Division. 2nd „ „ Park. [jBerezoxka. list .. Heavy Artillery Division. А"“?*Ьа (near 1 1 V11 Iva/. i ^Berezovka. | Peschanka. 2nd Siberian Sapper Battalion. 2nd ,, Pontoon ,, 4th ,, Air Company. 3rd Siberian (Irkutsk). 7th Siberian Rifle. 1st. 25th Siberian Rifle (4 battalions). 26th } Irkutsk. 2nd. 27th Siberian Rifle (4 battalions). 28th Irkutsk. 7th Siberian Rifle Artillery. Irkutsk. 8th Siberian Rifle. 1st. 29th Siberian Rifle (4 battalions). 30th Achinsk. Krasnoyarsk. 2nd. 31st Siberian Rifle (4 battalions). 32nd Г" ' — CD Krasnoyarsk. oo Kansk. 8th Siberian Rifle Artillery. 8 batteries: 6 field and 2 mountain. Krasnoyarsk. Corps Troops. Irkutsk Independent Cossack Squadron. Krasnoyarsk ,, ,, ,, 3rd Siberian Howitzer Artillery Division. 5th Siberian Sapper Battalion. 2nd „ Wireless Telegraph Coy. Irkutsk. Minusinsk. Nijneudinsk. Irkutsk. Troops not included in Army Corps. 1st Siberian Railway Battalion. Irkutsk Local Brigade (7 sub-districts, 7 detachments and 9 escorts/ । Disciplinary Battalion (4 companies). Verkhneudinsk. V erkhneudinsk. * A large force from this district is in Eastern Mongolia. f 3 field batteries at Dauriyaand 2 mountain batteries at Nerchinsk.
Irkutsk Military District—continued. COSSACK RESERVE TROOPS. О Trans-Baikal Cossacks. 2nd Verkhneudinski (T.B.) Cossacks... 2nd Chitinski (T.B.) Cossacks...... 2nd Argunski (T.B.) Cossacks....... 2nd Nerchinski (T.B.) Cossacks 3rd and 4th (T.B.) Cossacks H. Batteries 3rd Verkhneudinski (T.B.) Cossacks ... 2nd Category. 6 squadrons, в „ 6 6 12 guns. 3rd Category. 6 squadrons.
PRI-AMUR MILITARY DISTRICT. (в 10626) (Amur, Littoral, Kamchatka and Sakhalin Provinces.) Headquarters at Khabarovsk. Army Corps. Divisions. । Brigades. j Regiments, &c. | Stationed at j i । 1st Siberian. (Vladivos- tok) 4 1st Siberian Rifle. I ! 1st. I 11st Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 2nd „ „ „ (4 „ ). Razdolnoe. Nikolsk. j 2nd. i । 3rd Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 4th „ „ „ (4 „ ). Shkotovo. Vladimiro- Alexandrovskoe. i 1st Siberian Rifle Artillery. । 1 1st Siberian Rifle Field Artillery Park. I 1st Siberian Rifle Mountain Artillery | Park. I. Nikolsk, t Shkotovo. yi Barabash. 2nd Siberian Rifle. j 1st. 5th Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 6th ,, ,, ,, (4 ,, )• Nikolsk. Razdolnoe. 2nd. 7t.h Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 8th „ „ „ (4 „ ). Novokievskoe. Barabash. 2nd Siberian Rifle Artillery. 8 batteries. 2nd Siberian Rifle Field Artillery Park. 2nd Siberian Rifle Mountain Artillery Park. Razdolnoe.J Razdolnoe. Zaisanovka. t 3 field batteries Shkotovo, 3 field batteries Vladimiro-Alexandrovskoe, 2 mountain batteries Nikolsk. j 3 field batteries Barabash, 3 field batteries Razdolnoe, 2 mountain batteries Zaisanovka.
Pri-Amur Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. i Brigades. ’ Regiments, &c. Stationed at 1st Siberian (Vladivos- tok)—cont. Ussuri Cavalry. Primorski Dragoons. 1st Nerschinski (T.B.) Cossacks. Ussuri Cossack Regiment (2 squadrons).* Razdolnoe. Grodekovo. Khabarovsk. 1st Horse Mountain Art. Division. Spasskoe. Corps : Troops. 1st Siberian Howitzer Artillery Division. 1st Siberian Howitzer Artillery Park. 2nd Siberian Heavy Artillery Division. 2nd Siberian Heavy Artillery Park. 1st Siberian Sapper Battalion. Siberian Air Battalion (3 cos.). 1st Siberian Pontoon Battalion. 1st ,, Wireless Telegraph Co. Siberian Engineer Siege Park. South Ussuri Transport Co. j* Spasskoe. j* Nikolsk. Spasskoe. Iman. Nikolsk. Spasskoe. Nikolsk. 1 3rd | Siberian ' i Rifle. j i 1 1 1st. 9th Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 10th „ ,, (4 „ ). J* Vladivostok. 2nd. i 11th Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 12th „ „ „ (4 ). J* Vladivostok. 3rd Siberian Rifle Artillery. 8 batteries: 3 howitzer, 3 heavy, 2 mountain. 3rd Siberian Rifle Howitzer, Heavy and Mountain Artillery Parks. Vladivostok. <a>
4th Siberian (Vladivos- tok) 9th Siberian Rifle. 1 1st. I 1 33rd Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 34th „ „ „ (4 „ ). У Vladivostok. 2nd. 1 35th Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 36th ,, „ „ (4 „ ). } Vladivostok. 1 9th Siberian Rifle Artillery.' Я batteries : 6 field, 2 mountain. 9th Siberian Rifle Field and Mountain Artillery Parks. У Vladivostok. Corps Troops. 4th Siberian Howitzer Artillery Division. 4th Siberian Howitzer Artillery Park. 6th Siberian Sapper Battalion. J> Vladivostok. 5th Siberian (Khabaro- vsk) 6th Siberian Rifle. 1st. 21st Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). 11 W{tAieV 22nd „ „ ,, (4 ,, ). l/^iKoisK. 2nd. 23rd Siberian Rifle Regt. (4 battalions). ' 24th „ (4 „ ). J- Khabarovsk. 6th Siberian Rifle Artillery. । 8 batteries. 6th Siberian Rifle Field and Mountain 1 Artillery Parks. | Khabarovsk.f 1 Iman. 1 10th Siberian RiHe. 1st. 37th Siberian Rifle (4 bns.). 38th } Blagovyeshchensk. 2nd. 39th Siberian Rifle (4 bns.). 40th Khabarovsk. Nikolaevsk. ♦ This regiment expands to 6 squadrons on mobilization by the addition of 2 squadrons 2nd Category and 2 squadrons 3rd Category. t 3 field batteries Nikolsk, 3 field batteries Khabarovsk, 2 mountain batteries Iman.
Pri-Amur Military District—continued. Army Corps. Divisions. Brigades. । Regiments, Ac. । Stationed at 5th Siberian —contd. 10th Siberian Rifle Artil- lery. 8 batteries. 10th Siberian Rifle Field and Mountain | Artillery Parks. J Blagovyeshch ensk. * Corps Troops. 5th Silurian Howitzer Artillery Division. . 1 5th „ ~ Park. 3rd Siberian Sapper Battalion. 7th ,, ,, м > Spasskoe. Troops not included in Army Corps. 2nd Siberian Railway Battalion. i Disciplinary Battalion. । 1 Local Detachment, 2 escorts. 1 Krasnaya Ryechka (near Khabarovsk). Anuchino. н CO 00 FORTRESS TROOPS. Vladivostok (1st class) ... 2 fortress artillery brigades of 2 regiments (15 bns.). I 1 1 1 1 Nikolaevsk (3rd class) ... 2 1 1 , mining battalion (4 cos.). , sapper battalion (4 cos.). , telegraph company. , artillery depot. , engineer depot. , artillery companies. , telegraph section (1st class). , sapper company (with a telegraph detach- ment). 1 „ river mining company. * 3 field and 2 mountain batteries, Blagovyeshchensk ; 3 field batteries at Khabarovsk.
APPENDIX II. WAR FORMATION OF COSSACK CAVALRY, ARRANGED BY CATEGORIES, FIELD UNITS ONLY. Army. —- Squadrons. Category. Total. 1st 2nd I ‘ 1 3rd i Don ...< r 1 Kuban 2 Guard regiments of 6 squadrons 17 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 1 to 17 6 independent squadrons, Nos. 1 to 6 17 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 18 to 34 30 independent squadrons, Nos. 7 to 36 18 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 35 to 52 12 102 6 102 30 108 199 2 Imperial Escort squadrons 1 division of 2 squadrons 11 regiments of 6 squadrons; 1st Yekaterinodarski, 1st Lineini, 1st Poltavski, 1st Tamanski, 1st Kavkazski, 1st Chernomorski, 1st Umanski, 1st Zaporojski, 1st Kubanski, 1st Labinski, 1st Khoperski 11 regiments of 6 squadrons ; 2nd Yekaterinodarski, &c. 11 regiments of 6 squadrons ; 3rd Yekaterinodarski, <fcc. । 120 132 108 360 01 £ 1 1 66 SI 1 1 ! i 70 1 66 66 202
War Formation of Cossack Cavalry—continued. Squadron. Army. i Category. Total. 1st 1 2nd 3rd Terek .-i 1 I 2 Imperial Escort squadrons 4 regiments of 6 squadrons ; 1st Voljski, 1st Sunjenko-Vladi- kavkazski, 1st Kizlyar-Grebenski, 1st Gorsko-Mosdokski 4 regiments of 6 squadrons ; 2nd Voljski, 4 regiments of 6 squadrons ; 3rd Voljski, &c 2 i 24 । 24 I — 1 16 26 j 24 16 66 Astrakhan ** J squadron (Guard) 1 regiment of 4 squadrons, No. 1 1 regiment of 4 squadrons, No. 2 1 regiment of 4 squadrons, No. 3 I 1 4 i 11*1 4 j __________ 4 4 1 12} Orenburg.. 1 Guard squadron 4 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 1 to 3 2 regiments of 4 squadrons. Nos. 4 to 6 2 independent squadrons, Nos. 1 and 2 6 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 7 to 12 6 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 13 to 18 1 1 24 8 2 I 1 I z i — 36 36 35 ! 36 36 107 200
f 1 Guard squadron 1 2 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 1 and 3 P i I 1 regiment of 4 squadrons. No. 2 vrai ... s regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 4 to 6 i 1 1 regiment of 6 squadrons, No. 7 ... ( 2 regiments of 4 squadrons, Nos. 8 and 9 1 i J squadron (Guard) J 3 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 1 to 3 owe ...< g regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 4 to 6 w 3 regiments of 6 squadrons, Nos. 7 to 9 J squadron (Guard) Semi- 1 1 regiment of 4 squadrons, No. 1 ryechie... J 1 regiment of 4 squadrons, No. 2 1 regiment of 4 squadrons, No. 3 f | squadron (Guard) Trans. । 4 regiments of 6 squadrons ; 1st Chitinski, 1st Verkhne-Udinski, ±Га РяПгя! 4 1st Nerchinski, 1st Argunski * * J 4 regiments of 6 squadrons, 2nd Chitinski, &c ( 1 regiment of 6 squadrons, 3rd Verkhne-Udinski 1 12 4 18 00 05 Illi 17 18 J4 49 1 1 So 18 18 18J 18 18 54J J 4 4 1 1 r 41 4 4 _12j 1 2 24 24 all 1 ! 24g 24 6 54J to
War Formation of Cossack Cavalry—continued. Army. - ( 1st Squa Category 2nd drons. 3rd 1 Total. 1 Irkutsk* ... 1 division of 3 squadrons, 1 of each category 1 1 ! 1 1 3 Kras- noyarsk* ...1 Amur Vssuri i 1 i 1 division of 3 squadrons, 1 of each category 1 squadron (Guard) 1 regiment of H squadrons, 2 of each category 1 division of 3 squadrons, 1 of each category i i squadron (Guard) *. 1 regiment of 6 squadrons, 2 of each category 1 Grand Total ' f 1 C*3 I IC 1 1 1 3 - 2 1 2 1 1 3 3 i 2L 2‘ ' 1 2 1 1 2i 2 2 327 333 279 939 * Independent squadrons, not forming part of any voisko. 202
203 APPENDIX III. INDEX TO ARMY CORPS, DIVISIONS, AND INDEPENDENT BRIGADES. The first table shows the composition of Army Corps by Divisions and Independent Brigades; the second table shows to which Army Corps each Division or Independent Brigade belongs. For abbreviations, see Appendix IV. A l iny Corps. Divisions and Rifle Brigades. i Page of Appendix I on which compo- sition is given. Military District. f 1 G. "I G. 4 2G., G.R.B. } 146 St. Petersburg. 11 G.O., 2G.C. J Gr. ( 1 Gr., 2 Gr. 1 1 10. f 173 Moscow. I. к J 22, 24. 148 St. Petersburg. II. 26, 43, 2 C. 152 Vilua. III. 25, 27, 5 R.B., 3 C. 15o TV. 30, 40. j 154 V. 7, 10,3 0. В. 1 1 174 Moscow. VI. 4, 16, 4 0. 157 Warsaw. VII. 13, 34. 170 Odessa. VIII. 14, 15, 4 R.B., 8 0. 171 IX. 5,42, 9 0. 164 Kiev. X. 9, 31, 10 0. 165 XI. 11, 32, 11 0. 166 Г12,19,3 В.В.Л XII. 1 12 0. 1 j 2 (Ooinb.) 167 >> V, Coss. 0. „
204 Index to Army Corps—continued. Army Corps. 1 Divisions and Hille Brigades. 1 i 1 Page of Appendix I on which coinpo- i sition is given, i Military District. XIII. XIV. XV. XVI. XVII. XV1I1. XIX. XX. XXI. XXII. XXIII. XXIV. XXV. I. Cauc. II. Cauc. Ill. Cauc. I. T 11. T I. S II. S III. S IV. s V. s 1 * 1 I 1, 36, 2 C.B. 18, I.R.B., 2 R.B., 13 C., 14 0. 6, 8. 6 C., 15 C. 41, 45. 47, 5 C. 3, 35. 23, 37, 50. 17, 38, 7 C., 1 Dun Coss. C. 28,29. 1 (LB. I 33, 44. 1, 2, 3 F.R.B. . 3 G., 2, G.C.B. 1 48, 49. 3 Gr., 46. >0,39,1 Cauc. R.B. 1 Cauc. Coss. 0. 'Cauc. Gr., 51, '| 2 Cauc. R.B., | Cauc. C., . 11 2 Cauc. Coss. C.J 21, 52, 3 Cauc. Coss. 0. 1, 2, 3T.R.B.. 1 T. i Coss. C. 4, 5 T.R.B. | 1 T-C. Coss. B. /1 1, 2 S.R. | 4, 5 S.R., 1 : T-B. Coss. B. j 7. 8 S.R. 3, 9 S.R. 6, 10 S.R. i 175 158 159 178 175 149 160 155 168 , 149 1 161 । 179 J 176 1 182 183 185 187 188 195 I 192 193 196 197 1 Moscow. , Warsaw. Kazan. Moscow. St. Petersburg. j Warsaw. i Vilna. Kiev. St. Petersburg. Warsaw. Kazan. Moscow. Caucasus. 1 Turkistan. Priainur. Irkutsk. Priamur. и
205 Index to Divisions, etc. Division or Independent Brigade. Army Corps. Page of Appendix I on which composi- tion is given. Infantry Divisions— 1 G. G. 146 2 G. G. I ! 146 3 G XXIII. 161 1 Gr. Gr. 173 2 Gr. Gr. I 173 3 Gr. XXV. 176 Cauc. Gr. II. Cauc. 183 1 XIII. 174 2 XXIII. 161 3 XVII. 175 4 VI. 157 5 IX. 164 6 XV. 159 7 V. 174 8 XV. 159 9 X. 165 10 V. 174 11 XI. 166 12 XII 167 13 VII. 170 14 VIII. 170 15 J, 171 16 VI. 157 17 XIX. 160 18 XIV. 158 19 XII. 167 20 I. Cauc. 182 21 III. Cauc. 185 22 I. 148 23 XVIII. 149 24 I. 148 25 III. 153 26 II. 152 27 HI. 153 28 XX. 154 29 155 30 IV. 154 31 X. 165 32 XI. 166 33 XXI. 168 34 VII. 170
206 Index to Divisions, etc.—continued. Division or Independent Brigade. Army Corps. 1 Page of Appendix I on which composi- tion is given. Infantry Divisions— 35 XVII. 175 36 XIII. 175 37 XVIII. 149 38 XIX. 160 39 I. Cauc. 182 40 IV. 154 41 XVI. 178 42 IX. 164 43 II. 152 44 XXL 168 45 XVI. 178 46 XXV. 176 47 XVI. 178 48 i XXIV. 179 49 179 50 XV11I. 149 51 11 Cauc. 183 52 HL „ 185 1 S. I. 8. 195 2 S. I. 8. 195 3 s. IV. 8. 196 4 S. II. S. 192 5 S. II. s. 192 6 S. V. s. 197 7 S. III. 8. 193 8 S. Ill 8. 193 9 8. IV. S. 197 10 8. V. s. 197 11 8. — 191 Rifle Brigades— G. 147 i XIV. 158 2 XII. 158 3 167 4 VIII. 171 5 III. 153 1 F. XXII. 149 2 F. »» , 150 3 F. • • 150 1 Cauc. I. Cauc. 182 2 Cauc. П. „ 184
207 Index to Divisions, etc. — continued. Division or Independent Brigade. Army Corps. Page of Appendix I on which composi- tion is given. Rifle Brigades— 1 T. I. T. 187 2 T. I. T. 187 3 T. I. T. 187 4 T. II. T. 188 5 T. II. T. 188 6 T. — 189 Cavalry Divisions— 1 G.C. G. 147 2 G.C. G. 147 1 0. Gr. 173 2 C. II. 152 3 c. in. 153 4 C. VI. 157 5 C. XVI. 179 6 C. XV. 159 7 C. XIX. 160 8 C. VI11. 171 9 0. IX. 164 10 0. X. 165 11 0. XL 166 12 C. XII. 167 13 0. XIV. 158 14 0. 159 15 0. XV. 159 Cauc. C. II. Cauc. 184 1 (Don) Coss. C. XIX. 161 2 (Comb.) Coss. C. XII. 168 Г Cauc. Coss. C. I. Cauc. 183 2 „ ,. .. II. „ 184 3 „ <• HI. 185 1 T. Coss. C. I. T. 188 Cacalry Brigades— ’ G. XXIII. 162 1 XX. 155 2 XIII. 175 3 V. 174 T-C. Coss. B. II. T. 189 Sib. Coss. B. 189 T-B. Coss. B. II. s. 192
208 APPENDIX IV. Alphabetical Index of the Titles of Russian Regiments (including War Formations). After the title of each regiment is given, in the order mentioned its number «and the division and the army corps to which it belongs. Abbreviations. G. = Guard. Gr. = Grenadier. Cauc. = Caucasian. T. = Turkistan. S. = Siberian. C. = Cavalry. D. = Dragoons. U. = Ulans. H. = Hussars. B. = Brigade. I. = Independent. Coss. = Cossacks. Kub. Kuban. Ter. =: Terek. T-B. = Trans-Baikal. T-C. = Trans-Caspian A. Abkhazski. 160.40.1V. Akhaltsikhski. 162.41. XVI. Akhtirski. 12H.12C.XII. Alexandriski. 5H.5C.XVI. Alexandro-Nevski. 198.50 XVIII. Alexandropolski. 161.41. XVI. Alexopolski. 31.8.XV. Amurski. Coss.—,5S. Apsheronski. 81.21.III.Cauc. Ardahano-Mikhailovski. 204.51.II.Cauc. Argunski. T-BCoss.T-BCossB.lI.S. Arkhangelogorodski. 17.5.IX. Arkhangelogorodski. 19D.1ICB.XX. Aslanduzski. 186.47.XVI. Astrakhanski. 12Gr.3Gr.XXV. Astrakhanski. 8D.8C.VIII. Astrakhanski. ICoss.—.XVI. Atamanski. See Leib-Gvardii Atamanski. Avarski. 187.47.XVI. Azovski. 45.12.XII.
209 В. Вак in ski. 153.39.1.Cauc. Bashkadiklyarski. 185.47.XVI. Baturineki. 175.44.XXI. Benderski. 132.33.XXI. Bessarabski. 129.33.XXI. Bolkhovski. 138.35.XVII. Borodinski. 68.17.XIX. Brestski. 49.13.VII. Bryansk!. 35.9.X. Biigski. 9U.9C.IX. Butirski. 66.17.XIX. Byelevski. 71.18.XIV. Byelgorodski. 12U.12C.XII. Bvelomorski. 89.23.XVIU. Byelorusski. 7H.7C.XIX. Byelostokski. 50.13.VII. Byelozerski. 13.4.VI. C. Chernigovski. 29.8.XV. Chernigovski. 17H. 21СВ.ХШ. Chernomorski. 149.38.XIX. Chernoinorski. KubCoss.2CaucCossC.IT.Cauc. Chitinski. T-BCoss.T-BCossB.U.S, Chuguevski. 11U.UC.XI. D. Dagestanski. 82.21.III.Cauc. Dagestanski (konni). —-.3CaucCossC.Iir.Cauc» Derbentski. 154.39.1.Cauc. Dnyeprovski. 46.12.XII. Dragunski. See Leib-Gvardii. Dorogobujski. 143.36.Х1П. Dvinski. 91.23.XVII1. Donskoi. 1U.28.XX. E Erivanskh 13Gr.CaucGr.II.Cauc. Estlyandski. 8.2.ХХШ. F. Fanogoriski. UGr.3Gr,XXV. Feodosiski. 134.34.VII Finlyandski. See Leib-Gvardii. Finlyandski. 20D.—.XXII. (в 10626) О
210 G. Galitski. 20.5.IX. Glukhovski. 6D.fiC.XV. Goriski. 202.51.2Cauc. Gorsko-Mozdokski. TerCoss.lCaucCossC.LCauc. Grenaderski. See Leib-Gvardii. Grenaderski Astrakhanski. See A. Grenaderski Fanagoriski. See F. Grenaderski Erivanski. See E. Grenaderski Grnzinski. See G. Grenaderski Kievski. Sec K. Grenaderski Malorossiski. See M. Grenaderski Moskovski. See M. Grenaderski Mingrelski. See M. Grenaderski Nesvijski. See N. Grenaderski Pemovski. See P. Grenaderski Hostovski. See R. Grenaderski Samogitski. See S. Grenaderski Sibirski. See S. Grenaderski Tavricheski. See T. Grenaderski Tiflisski. See T. Grenaderski Yekaterinoslavski. See Y. Grodnenski Husarski. See Leib-Gvardii.Grodnenski. Grokhovski. 182.46.XXV. Grnzinski. 14Gr.CaucGr.II.Cauc. Guriski. 159.40.IV. H. Husarski. See Leib-Gvardii Husarski. I. I meritin ski. 157.40. IV. Ingermanlandski. 9.3.XVII. Ingermanlandski. 10H.10C.X. Insarski. 196.49.XXIV. Irkutski. 93.24.1. Irkutski. 16H.1ICB.XX. Ivangorodski. 99.25.III. Izborski. 177.45.XVI. Izmailovski. See Leib-Gvardii. Izmailski. 189.48.XXIV. Izyumski. 11H.11C.XI. J. Jitomirski. 56.14.VI 11. K. Kabardinski. 80.20.1.Cauc. Kalujski. 5.2.XXIII. К am chatski. 44.11.XI. Kamenetski. 173.44.XXI. Kamski. 110.28.XX. Kargopolski. 5D.5C.XVI.
211 Karsski. 188.47.XVI. Kashirski. 144.36.Х1П. Kaspiski. 148.37.XVIII. Kavalergardski. See Leib-Gvardii. Kavkazski. KubCoss.T-CCossB.II.T. Kazachi. See Leib-Gvardii. Kazanski. 64.16.VI. Kazanski. 9D.9C.IX. Keksholmski. See Leib-Gvardii. Kerch-Yenikolski. 135,34. VII. Kharkovski. 4U.4C.VI. Khersonski. 130.33.XXI. Khoperski. KubCoss.lCaucCossC.ICauc. Kievski Grenaderski. 5Gr.2Gr.Gr. Kievski. 9H.9C.IX. Kinburgski. 7D.7C.XIX. Kirasirski. See Leib-Gvardii. Kizlyaro-Grebenski. TerCoss.3CaucCossC. III. Cauc Klyastitski. 6H.6C.XV. Kobrinski. 171.43.11. Kolivanski. 40.10.V. Kolomenski. 119.30.IV. Konni. See Leib-Gvardii. Konno-Grenaderski. See Leib-Gvardii. Konvoi Yevo Velichestva. Imperial Escort Squadrons (Coss.) Koporski. 4.1.XIII. Kostromski. 19.5.IX. Kozlovski. 123.31.X. Krasnoyarski. 95.24.1. Kremenchugski. 32.8.XV. Krimski. 73.19.XII. Krimski. D.—.VII. Kronshlotski. 200.50.XV1II. Kronshtadt ski. 199.50.XVIII. Kuban ski. 76.19.XII. Kubanski. KubCoss.lCaucCossC.I.Cauc. Kubinski. 155.39.1. Cauc. Kurinski. 79.20.I.Cauc. Kurlyandski. 2U.2C.II. Kurski. 125.32.XI. Kutaisski. 158.40.1 V. L. Labinski. KubCoss.2CaucCossC.II.Cauc. Ladojski. 16.4.VI. Largo-Kagulski. 191.48.XXIV. Leib-Gvardii Atamanski. GCoss.lGC.G. Leib-Gvardii Dragunski. GD.2GC.G. Leib-Gvardii Finlyandski. G.2G.G. Leib-Gvardii Grenaderski. G.2G.G- Leib-Gvardii Grodnenski Husarski. GH.GICB.XXI1I. Leib-Gvardii Husarski. GH.2GC.G. Leib-Gvardii Izmailovski. G.1G.G. Leib-Gvardii Kazachi. GCoss.lGC.G. Leib-Gvardii Keksholmski. G.3G.XXIII. Leib-Gvardii Kirasirski Yevo V. G.1GC.G. Leib-Gvardii Kirasirski Yeya V. G.1GC.G. (в 10626) о 2
214 Pskovski. 11.3.XVII. Pskovski. 2D.2C.II. Pultuski. 183.46.XXV. Putivlski. 127.32.ХГ. Pyatigorski. 151.38.XIX. R. Revelski. 7.2.XXIII. Rijski. 11D.11C.XI. Rilski. 126.32.XI. Riminski. 192.48.XXIV. Romenski. 174.44.XXI. Rostovski. 2Gr.lGr.Gr. Rovnenski. 166.42. IX. Ry^jski. 70.18.X1V. Ryazanski. 69.18.X1V. S. Salyanski. 206.52.111.Cauc. Samarski. 147.37.XVIII. Samogitski. 7Gr.2Gr.G. Samurski. 83.21.III.Cauc. Sankt-Peterburgski. See Leib-Gvardii. Sankt-Peterburgski. lU.lC.Gr Saratovski. 108.27.III. Schliisselburgski. 15.4. VI. Selenginski. 41.11.XI. Semenovski. See Leib-Gvardii. Semiryechenski. Coss.lT.CossC.I.T. Serpukhovski. 120.30. IV. Sevastopolski. 75.19.XII. Shemakhinski. 205.52.111. Cauc. Shirvanski. 84.21.111.Cauc. Shuiski. 118.30.IV. Sibirski. 9Gr.3Gr.XXV. Simbirski. 24.6.XV. Simferopolski. 133.34.VII. Smolensk!. 25.7.V. Smolenski. 3U.3C.III. Sofiski. 2.1.XIII. Starodubovski. 12D.12C.XU. Starooskolski. 128.32.XI. Starorusski. 113.29. XX. Stavropolski. 74.19.XII. Sukhumski. 203.51.II.Cauc. Sumski. IH.IC.Gr. Sunjensko-Vladikavkazski. TerCoss.CaucC.il.Cauc. Suzdalski. 62.16.VI. Sviyajski. 193.49.XXIV. Svodno-Kazachi. See Leib-Gvardii. Syeverski. 18D.CaucC.II.Cauc» Syevski. 34.9.X.
215 т. Taganrogski. 136.34.VII, Tamanski. 150.38.XIX. Tamanski. KubCoss.T-CCossB.II.T. Tambovski. 122.31.X. Tarutinski. 67.17.XIX. Tatarski. 15U.15C.XV. Tavricheski. 6Gr.2Gr.Gr. Tenginski. 77.2 .ICau. Tiflisski. 15Gr.CaucGr.II.Cauc. Tiraspolski. 131.33. XXI. Tobolbki. 38.10.V. Tomski. 39.10.V. Troitski. 107.27. III. Troitsko-Sergievski. 194.49.XXIV. Tsaritsinski. 146.37.XVIII. Tulski. 72.18.XIV. Tverski. 16D.CaucC.II.Cauc. U. Ufimski. 106.27.III. Uglitski. 63.16.VI. Ukrainski. 47.12.XII. Ukrainski. 15H.15C.XV. Ulanski. See Leib-Gvardii. Umanski. KubCoss.lCaucCossC.I.Cauc. Uralski. 112.28.XX. Ust-Dvinski. 179.45.XVI. Ustiujski. 104.26.11. V. •Varshavski. 184.46.XXV, Velikolutski, 12.3.XVII. Vendenski. 178.45.XVI. Verkhneudinski. T-BCoss.T-BCossB.II.S. Viborgski. 85.22.1. Vilenski. 52.13.VII. Vilmanstrandski. 86.22.1. Vindavski. 180 45.XVI. Vitebski. 27.7. V Vladikavkazski. 152.38.XIX. Vladimirski. 61.16.VI, Vladimirski. 13U.13C.XIV. Voennago Ordena. 13D.13C.XIV. Volgski. TerCoss. (2Comb)CossC. XII. Volinski. See Leib-Gvardii. Volinski. 6U.6C.XV. Volinski. 53.14.VIII. Voljski. 109.28.XX. Vologodski. 18.5.IX. Voronejski. 124.31.X. Voenesenski. 8U.8C.VIII. Vyatski. 102.26.11. Vyazemski. 115.29.XX.
216 Y. Yakutski. 42.11.XI. Yamburgski. 14U.14C.XIV. Yaroslavski. 117.30.1V. Yegerski. See Leib-Gvardii. Yekaterinburgski. 37.10.V. Yekaterinodarski. KubCoss.3CaucCoss. III.Cauc. Yekaterinoslavski. lGr.lGr.Gr. Yeletski. 33.9.X. Yelizavetgradski. 3H.3C.III. Yelizavetpolski. 156.39.1.Cauc. Yeniseiski. 94.24.1. Yurievski. 98.25.111. Z. Zakatalski. 164.41.XVI. Zamostski. 60.15.VIII. Zaporojski. KubCoss.2CaucCossC.il.Cauc. Zaraiski. 143.35.XVII. Zvenigorodski. 142.36.XI II.
217 APPENDIX V. CLASSIFIED LIST OF FORTRESSES. The following are the chief Russian fortresses grouped by frontiers. The class of each is shown in brackets after it. Those without a number are unclassed and of secondary importance. Gulf of Finland and Baltic Coast— Kevel-Porkala (Fortress of Peter the) Great)* Sveaborg (Helsingfors) (2) Viborg (3) Kronstadt (1) Ust-Dvinsk (Dunamund) (3) Libau* St. Petersburg Western Frontier— Kovno (I) Grodno* Novogeorgievsk (1) Brest Litovsk (1) Ivangorod* Osovets (3) Lomja Zegrj* Bender ... HSt. Petersburg District.) d ••• | (Vilna District.) ... (St. Petersburg District.) -(Vilna District.) " ►(Warsaw District.) ... (Odessa District.) Black Sea Coast— Sevastopol (2) Ocbakov (3) Kerch Mikhailovsk (Batum) (3)t ...^►(Odessa District.) Turkish Frontier— Kars (3) Alexandropol (depdt fortress) ... 1 (Caucasus District.) ♦ Considerable changes have taken place recently in the Russian scheme of fortification» especially on the Western frontier. The defences of Warsaw are being razed to the ground; Ivangorod, Libau, Zegrj and Kerch are no longer considered as fortresses. On the other hand, Grodno is being deve- loped into a first-class fortress, and the fortress of Peter the Great, Revel- Porkala, which will be finished in 1918, is designed as a defensive line in advance of Krondstadt, Viborg and Sveaborg to close the approaches to St. Petersburg from the sea. t Batum is said to have been dismantled, but still has the status of a fortress.
218 Central Asia and Afghan Frontier— Kushk (3)...................... Turkistan................... Kerki....................... Termez ..................... >(Turkistan District.) Pacific Coast— Vladivostok (1) Nikolaevsk (3) (Pri-Amur District.) The following places, which are unclassed, are also fortified, but many of them are mere fortified posts Kiev (depdt fortress) ... Dubno ............... Dvinsk (depOt fortress) Yevgenievsk ......... Karadagh ............ Khunzakh ............ Khodjal Makhi........ Preohrajensk ........ Veden ............... Georgievsk .......... Gunib ............... Akhti ............... Alexandrovsk ........ Krasnovodsk ......... Askhabad ............ Merv ................ Chikishliar ......... Tashkent ............ Ura Tiube ........... Namangan ............ Kokand .............. Aulieata............. Khodjend ............ Samarkand ........... Chinaz .............. Kliuchevoi .......... Chust ............... Makhram ............. Petro Alexandrovsk Andijan ... Skobelev ... Chimkend Perovsk ... Djarkend ... Bakhti Karakol ... Narin Zaisan J* (Kiev District.) (Vilna District.) (Caucasus District.) ► (Turkistan District.)
219 APPENDIX VI. The Distinguishing Marks on the Field Service Dress of the Russian Army. A description of the field service dress is given on page 50. The unit to which an officer or man belongs can best be ascertained, in the case of Guard units, by the coloured piping on the collar, cuffs, and shoulder-straps ; in the case of all other units, by the distinguishing marks on the shoulder-straps. There are also certain additional guides which may be useful aids in determining the unit to which an individual belongs ; these are the colour of the shoulder-straps of the greatcoat (which is the same as the coloured side of the reversible shoulder-strap of the blouse), the colour of the collar patches on the greatcoat, and, in the case of cavalry, the coloured stripe on the breeches. These various distinctions are given in this appendix in four Tables, viz. :— Table A—The shoulder-straps of greatcoat and collar, patches on greatcoat. Table В—The stripe on breeches of cavalry units. Table C—The piping, buttons and braid worn by Guard units. Table D—The distinguishing marks on shoulder-straps of all units, except Guard.
TABLE A. The Shoulder-straps of the Greatcoat and of the Collar Patches on the Greatcoat. (See Plate 7.) Unit. Colour of shoulder-strap. Colour of collar-patches. Infantry— Guard regiments Grenadier regiments fist brigade in Line regiments J «ach division. ! c 2nd brigade in each division. Rifle ... Artillery and Engineers Cavalry— Guard Line Cossacks Train Red Л ’ ye]jow 1st regiment of each division, Red r>Afl i ’2nd „ „ „ Blue Kea И 3rd „ „ „ White B]ue 4th „ „ „ Green Crimson j Dark green, crimson piping. Scarlet I Black, scarlet piping. Same as stripe on breeches (see p j page 221), with or without I coloured piping. Same as stripe on breeches (see Generally same as shoulder- below), with dark green or 1 > straps, but there are many 1 white piping in dragoon regi- : exceptions. i ments, dark blue in lancer regi- 1 ments, and no piping in hussar i | regiments. ' ) Varies with voisko (see page 222) Varies with voisko (see page 222). I Blue ! Blue. i ।
TABLE В. The Stripe on Breeches of Cavalry Regiments. Guard cavalry.—See page 225. Line cavalry. Colour of Stripe. Dragoons. Lancers. Hussars. । Other regiments. Scarlet Crimson White Yellow Blue Rose Orange Light green 1st, 9th, 19th 3rd, 10th, 15th to 18thf 5th. 13th 7th, 8th, 20th 6th, 11th, 12th 2nd 4th 14th 1st, 5th, 9th, 16th 15th, 17th 3rd, 7th, 11th 4th, 8th, 12th, 13th 2nd, 6th, 10th, 14th I (Crimean regiment* ( Daghestan Horse 5th to 8th, 13th to 15th, 18th — 1st to 4th, 9th to Littoral Dragoons 12th, 16th, 17th Turkoman Horse 1 Division i 1 । * Broad stripe. Officers have broad white stripe with scarlet line, f 17th Dragoons have broad stripe. to to
Cossack cavalry:—The colour of the stripe on trousers, of the shoulder-strap on greatcoat and collar-patches of the greatcoat varies according to the voisko. Cossacks of the Caucasus (Terek and Kuban voidcos) wear a special dress (see p. 58). Voisko. Stripe on trousers. Shoulder-strap of greatcoat. Patch on collar of greatcoat. Don Scarlet I 1 Blue, scarlet piping Scarlet Ural Crimson Crimson Crimson Orenburg | Light blue i Light blue i Light blue Astrakhan 4 Trans-Baikhal | Irkutsk and f Krasnoyarsk J Yellow i Yellow i Yellow Amur Yellow Dark green, yellow piping Dark green, yellow piping Ussuri Yellow Yellow, dark green piping Yellow, dark green piping Siberian Scarlet Scarlet I t Scarlet Semiryechie Crimson Crimson Crimson 222
TABLE С. The Piping, Buttons, and Braid on Officers’ Field Service Dress and on N.C.Os. and Men’s Field Service Blouses for Units of the Guard. (See Plate 8.) Unit. Guard Infantry Units. Officers. N.C.Os. and Men. Piping on the flap of the breast pocket. PiDine on ! Shoulder- cu#s. stra₽ batons, IHCLSLl» Braid strip on upper edge of blouse at the breast ' opening. Braid on I ! Piping on shoulder- straps. 1 1st Guard Division— Life Guard Preobrajenski Scarlet ! White I Yellow Scarlet 1 White I Scarlet. Regiment. Life Guard Semenovski Light blue (straight) ( Light blue (straight) Light blue. Regiment. Life Guard Ismailovski White White White. Regiment. Life Guard Yegerski Regi- Dark green Dark green Dark green. ment. 2nd Guard Division— Life Guard Moskovski Scarlet Scarlet Scarlet Scarlet Scarlet. Regiment. Life Guard Grenaderski Light blue (straight) Light blue (straight) Light blue. Regiment. Life Guard Pavlovski White White White. Regiment. Life Guard Finlandski Dark green »» Dark green ♦ > Dark green. Regiment. 223
Officers. Unit. Piping on the ( flap of the । breast pocket. Piping on | cuffs. 3rd Guard Division— ] । Life Guard Litovski Regi- ment. Yellow Yellow (straight) } > 1 Life Guard Keksgolmski Regiment. Blue । Life Guard St. Peter- burgski Regiment. Life Guard Volinski Regi- ment. Guard Rifle Brigade— White Dark green j Life Guard 1st Rifle Regi- ment. Crimson White (straight) Life Guard 2nd Rifle Regi- ment. ♦♦ — Life Guard 3rd Rifle Regi- ment. i ” 1 Crimson (straight) Life Guard 4th Rifle Regi- ment. 1 i — i i i
Guard Infantry Units. N.C.Os. and Men. Shoulder- strapbuttons, metal Braid stripe on upper edge of blouse at the breast opening. Braid on cuffs. Piping on shoulder- straps. White i »» Yellow Blue Yellow (straight) ♦» Yellow. Blue. White White. Dark green Dark green. Yellow White Crimson ♦ > White (straight) Crimson. ♦> Yellow ! 1 ♦ ♦ 1 Crimson (straight) »♦ 224
(в 10626) Guard Cavalry and Guard Cossack Units. Unit. Officers. f N.C.Os. and Men. | All ranks. Piping on I cuffs. * Shoulder-strap buttons, metal. White Yellow White Yellow White Yellow >> White Yellow White »» Yellow White »> Braid on cuffs. 1 1 Biue (pointed) Dark green (pointed) »» Azure blue (pointed) Scarlet (pointed) ♦ » Azure blue (pointed) White (pointed) Piping on shoulder-straps. Stripe on breeches. Her Majesty’s Kavalergardski Regiment. Life Guard Konni Regiment ,, „ His Majesty's Cui- rassier Regiment. Life Guard Her Majesty Empress Marie Fedorovna's Cuirassier Regiment. Life Guard His Majesty's Lancer Regiment. Life Guard Her Majesty Empress Alexandra Fedorovna's Lancer Regiment. Life Guard Mounted Grenadier Regiment. Life Guard Dragoon Regiment ... ,, „ His Majesty’s Hussars Regiment. Life Guard Grodnensk; Hussars Regiment. Guard Field Gendarme Squadron ,, Reserve Cavalry Regiment Life Guard Cossack His Majesty's Regiment. Life Guard Atamanski Regiment... ,, ,, Composite Cossack Regiment. .Blue (pointed) >> Dark green (pointed) >» Azure blue (pointed) Scarlet (pointed) Azure blue (pointed) White (pointe i). Scarlet Yellow Blue Yellow Blue Dark green t 9 9 ? Scarlet Azure blue White Scarlet. Yellow. Blue. Scarlet. Yellow. White. Scarlet. 99 No stripe. ♦» »» 99 99 225
Unit. Life Guard 1st Artillery Brigade м ,, 2nd »» »» 3rd n ,, Guard Rifle Artillery Division ... „ Howitzer ,, „ Horse Artillery Brigade... 6th Life Guard Don Cossack Battery Life Guard Engineer Battalion
Guard Artillery (including Guard Cossack Artillery) and Guard Engineer Units. Officers. N.C.Os. and Men. Piping on cuffs. Piping on lower edge of collar. Shoulder-strap buttons, metal. Braid on cuffs. •• White (straight) Black (straight'' Yellow (straight; Crimson (straight) Light Blue (straight) Black (pointed) White (straight) Scarlet »» »* »» >> >» Yellow 9» 9» 9 » 9 9 99 . 99 91 White (straight) b® Black (straight) Yellow (straight) Crimson (straight) Light blue (straight) Black (pointed) White (straight)
227 TABLE D. The Distinguishing Marks (shifrovka) on Shoulder Straps of all Units, except Guard. I .—These distinguishing marks consist of one, or a combination of two, of the following :— (a) The numeral indicating the number of the unit to which the wearer belongs, followed in some cases by a distinguishing letter or letters denoting the region or the branch or arm of the service to which the unit belongs. If the unit has no number, as in. the case of local troops, the distinguishing letter or letters only are used. For further particulars see pages 228 and 229 (III, IV, and V). (6) A monogram (venzel\ in place of the numeral, in the case of regiments which have a member of the Imperial family or some foreign monarch as their Colonel-in-Chief {shefslcie ро1кг). See list No. 4, page 243. This includes all infantry of the Grenadier Corps, except the 4th, 7th and 10th Grenadier regiments, which wear instead of a monogram the initial letters of their titles (see pages 245, 246, 247). (c) A distinctive badge in the case of artillery (crossed guns), engineer and technical units, or a distinguish- ing small type letter in the case of staffs, hospitals, transport and other auxiliary units. See page 228, III and IV and also List 1 (page 231). II .—Colour of Distinguishing Marks on Shoulder-straps— Officers.—The distinguishing marks are embroidered or fastened on. The only distinction of colour is that officers of mounted units have the distinguishing marks of the opposite colour to that of their metal equipment (г.е., gold, if their buttons are silver and vice vers<T). Officers of other units have the distinguishing marks of the same colour as their metal equipment. 'в 10626) p 2
228 Officers of units of which the Emperor, Empress, or Tsarevich, are Colonel-in-Chief, wear their Chief’s monogram in the same colour as their metal equipment, whether they belong to dismounted units or not. Officers wear the same shoulder-straps in peace and war. Bank and file.—The rank and file have reversible shoulder-straps, one side of which is coloured, the other of grey-green colour. In peace the coloured side is worn uppermost, and the distinguishing marks are stencilled on them in yellow, except in the case of white, yellow or dark- blue shoulder-straps, when the stencilling is in scarlet. In field service dress the grey-green side is worn uppermost and the colour of the stencilling indicates the arm or department, to which a man belongs ; thus :— Colour of stencilling. | Yellow Crimson ... Light blue Dark blue... Scarlet Orange Brown Green White Black Arm or branch of the Service. Infantry (except Guard) and divisional hospitals of infantry divisions. Rifle regiments. Rifle artillery divisions, divi- sional and brigade hospitals of Rifle units. Cavalry (except. Guard) and Horse zlrtillery, and Horse* Mountain artillery batteries. Cossacks. Artillery (except Horse artillery, Fortress art- illery, Rifle artillery divisions^ and Cossack batteries). Staffs of army corps, Fortress artillery and fortress staffs, field hospitals and sanitary units. Engineer units. Railway troops. Instructional Automobile Com- pany, Odessa Naval Battalion. Supply and Transport units (including Hospital trains). Intern lance. III .—The numeral.—The numeral (tsifra) indicates the number of the unit to which a man belongs, except in the case of Corps, Divisional and Brigade Staffs, when the number is that of the Corps, Division or Brigade. All numerals are Arabic, except in the case of Corps Staffs, when Roman numerals are used. IV .—The distinctive badges.—The distinctive badges (spetsialni znaki) (see Plate 10), are worn above the
229 distinguishing numeral or letter, except in the case of a few special units (e.g., the Instructional Automobile Company) which have no distinguishing numeral or letter. V .—The distinguishing letters.—Distinguishing letters in small type (maliya Uteri) (e.g., 6, worn by Brigade Staffs) are worn above the distinguishing numeral or letter. An alphabetical list of these is subjoined. (List No. 1.) Distinguishing letters in large type (bolshiya Uteri) or with the initial letter in large type (e.g., Гв = Guard), are worn alongside and after the numeral, or, where there is no numeral, in the same place as the numeral would be. Ad alphabetical list is subjoined. (List No. 2.) VI.—The application of the system of distinguishing marks.—A reference to the examples given in Plate 9 will make clear the system of distinguishing .marks. Thus in the 1st example the colour of the stencilling (yellow) indicates an infantry unit. The numeral 84 gives the regiment, and as the Russian regiments are numbered in sequence according to the division they belong to, by dividing by 4 the number of the division maybe ascertained, in this case the 21st. The title of the regiment may be ascertained by reference to the order of battle. The man belongs to the 84th Shirvanski Regiment of the 21st Infantry Division and III Caucasian Army Corps. (N.B.—In the case of cavalry regiments, the number of the regiment is usually the same as that of the cavalry division of which it forms part. Thus the Ш Cavalry Division contains the ls< Dragoons, 1^ Ulans, ls£ Hussars, and Ш Don Cossacks.) In the 2nd example the colour of the stencilling (yellow) again indicates infantry. A reference to the first of the lists given below show’s that л means a divisional hospital (lazaret), and the number is the number of the division. The man, therefore, belongs to the divisional hospital of the 8th Infantry Division. In the 3rd example a reference to the second of the lists given below shows that 1I.M stands for one of either of the following : St. Petersburg, Petrozavodsk, Povyenets, Pudoj, Pinega, or Pavlodar Local (Myestni) Infantry Detachments. There is no means of ascertaining by the shoulder-strap to which of these the man belongs, the letter II being the same for all of these.
230 In the 4th example the colour of the stencilling (crimson) indicates a Rifle unit. A reference to the first of the lists given below shows that 6 means a Brigade Staff. A reference to the second list shows that Ф means a Finland unit, and the numeral gives the number of the brigade. The man, therefore, belongs to the staff of the 2nd Finland Rifle Brigade. N.B.—The following Cossack units have no distinguishing marks on the shoulder-straps :— Independent units of the Ural Cossack voisko. The Amur Cossack Division.
List I.—Distinctive badges or distinguishing letters worn above the numeral or letter. N.B.—For distinctive badges see Plate 10. Badge or letter. Units. Colour of Stencilling. Distinctive badge No. 1 Railway troops Green 99 9» No. 2 Instructional Automobile Company ... ... ... 99 No. 3 Odessa Naval Battalion А А Л ... ... 99 No. 4 Grenadier Sapper Battalion ... ... ... Brown 99 No. 5 Sapper battalions (including telegraph companies of sapper battalions) • •. • • • • • • 19 No. 6 Engineer siege parks • • • • • • • • • >9 99 у 9 No. 7 Mining units • • • • ее .ее 99 9» No. 8 Pontoon „ .. . e e • • a 99 9) •9 No. 9 Air ,, ... • . • ... 99 9, 9» No. 10 ... Telegraph units (except telegraph companies of sapper battalions) • • • ••• ... 99 99 99 No. 11 ... Wireless telegraph companies ... • • • ••• ... 99 99 No. 12 ... Grenadier artillery Scarlet r Crimson Light blue >9 99 No. 13 ... Artillery (except Grenadier) ... . •. ... ... -9 Dark blue Scarlet u Orange 99 No.'14 ... Artillery parks • •• a a a • a a Scarlet to co
List I.—Distinguishing Badges, &c.—contd. Badge or letter. Units. Colour of Stencilling. 6 Д Д.З Г.П Ж Л П.Г 1I.T С.Г C.1I C.T Brigade staffs Divisional staffs Disinfecting detachments Fortress pigeon-post stations Fortress police detachments (Divisional hospitals of infantry divisions ... \ Brigade hospitals of rifle brigades Field hospitals Supply columns ... Sanitary detachments Докрйа! trains ... ... Sanitary columns '..J 4 -4 Crimson Light blue Dark blue Green Brown Orange r Yellow Crimson Dark blue Light blue Orange »> Yellow Crimson Orange White Orange White n 232
233 List No. 2,—DISTINGUISHING LETTERS WORN IN LINE WITH AND AFTER THE NUMERAL OR IN PLACE OF THE NUMERAL. Letters. Units. i Colour of Stencilling. i A Amur Cossack Regiment Staffs of Amur Local Brigades ... Dark blue Orange А-Д Amu-Darya Flotilla ... ... Yellow Ал Alexandropol Fortress Units... Orange A.M Armavir,* Akhta, Akhalkalaki, Ak - Alexandropol, Akmolinsk, Atbasar, drovsk Local Detachments Tyubinsk, Alexan- Yellow Apr Argunski (T.B.) Cossack Regiments ... Dark blue Б.Л Brest-Litovski Air Battalion „ Fortress Troops Brown Orange Brown Б.М Belebei, Birsk, Berezov, Bodaibinsk, Biisk, Barnaul, Balagansk, Batalpushinsk,* Local De- tachments Yellow Бнд. Bender Fortress Units j- Orange r Warsaw Fortress Units Orange Brown В ,, Local Brigade Staff - „ District Staff Orange * Cossack detachments—colour of stencilling dark blue.
236 List No. 2.—Distinguishing Letters Worn in Line, &c.—contd. Letters. Units. Г 1 j Colour of i Stencilling. 3.M Zmyeinogorsk, Zakansk, Local Detachments I Yellow 3n Zaporojski Cossack Regiments Dark blue 3-0 Siberian Cossack Brigade Staff i Dark blue И Intendance ' Black Ив Ivangorod Fortress Units ... ... ... { Orange ' Brown И.М Jjev, Irbit, Irgiz, Ishim, Local Detachments Yellow Irkutsk Cossack Regiment Dark blue Ир „ Local Brigade Staff ... ... ... 1 „ District Staff... ... ... ... j Orange Yellow Crimson Light blue к 1 Caucasian Units ... ... ... ... •! 1 1 1 Dark blue Scarlet Orange 1 1 I . Green Кб 1 Kuban Cossack Regiments ... 1 Dark blue к. 1 Kiev Local Brigade Staffs ... ... ... *1 „ District Staffs ... ... ... ... j i 1 Orange кг 1 Mountain H.A. Parks... ! Scarlet 1 к-г Kizlyaro-Grebenski (Terek) Cossack Regiments ... | Dark blue Кз Kazan Local Brigade Staffs ... ... ... 1 „ District Staffs ... ... ... ... J Orange * Cossack detachments—colour of stencilling, dark blue.
237 List No. 2.—Distinguishing Letters Worn in Line, &c.—contd. Letters. । Units. Colour of Stencilling. Kargopol, Kern, Kazan, Kotelnich, Kungur, Krasnoufimsk, Kamishlov, Kustanai, Kars, i 1 K.M. Kurgan, Kainsk, Kuznetsk, Kokchetav, Karakalinsk, Kansk, Kamensk,* Konstantinov,* Local Detachments Yellow Kremenchug Local Artillery Detachment ... Scarlet Ков Kovno Fortress Units ... ... { Orange Brown Kp Kronstadt Fortress Units ... ... ... { Orange Brown Крк Kerki Fortress Units ... Orange Крн Krasnoyarsk Cossack Division Dark blue Ken Caspian Flotilla Yellow Kpc Kars Fortress Units ... ... ... ... Orange Brown Крч Kerch Fortress Units... ... ... ... { Orange Brown Кш Kushk Cadre Transport Company White ,, Fortress Troops Orange Л Labinski (Kuban) Cossack Regiments Dark blue Лб Libau Fortress units ... ... ... ... Orange Brown Лм —— Lornja Fortress units ... Orange * Cossack detachments—colour of stencilling, dark blue.
238 List No. 2.—Distinguishing Letters Worn in Line, &c.—contd. Letters. Units. Colour of Stencilling. Л.М Lodeinopol, Lugansk, Lbishchensk, Letijansk, Lenkoran, Lepsinsk, Labinsk,* Local Detach- ments Yellow Лн Lineini (Kuban) Cossack Regiments Dark blue M (Preceded by init ial letter of region, and in case of Local troops (appearing elsewhere in this list Yellow according to alphabetical order of letter denoting Dark blue local Artillery their region) Scarlet Parks by a numeral.) M.M Mezen, Malmij, Menzelinsk, Maikop, Mozdok, Mariinsk, Minusinsk Local Detachments Yellow i Moscow Local Artillery Detachment Scarlet Mu Minsk Local Brigade Staff ... Orange Mp Howitzer Divisions Scarlet Me Moscow Local Brigade Staff ... ... ... "1 „ District Staff... ... ... ... J Orange Mx Mikhailovsk (Batum) Fortress Units ... { Orange Brown H Novogeorgievsk Fortress Units ... ... Orange Brown Hk 1 Nikolaevsk Fortress Units ... ... ... Orange Brown * Cossack detachments—colour of stencilling, dark blue.
239 List No. 2.—Distinguishing Letters Worn in Line, &c.—contd. Letters. Unite. । Colour of Stencilling. H.M HP Нрч 0 Об Од Ом О.М Ос О св Оч П Nolinsk, Novorossisk, Nakhichevan, Novoniko- laevsk, Nijnechirsk,* Novocherkassk, Local Detachments Narev River Mining Company Nerchinski (T.B.) Cossack Regiments Orenburg Cossack Regiments „ Local Brigades Staff Transport Battalions and Companies Odessa Local Brigade Staff ... „ District Staff... Omsk Local Brigade Staff ... ... ... 1 „ District Staff ... ... j Okhta, Olonets, Onega, Osinsk, Orlov, Okhansk, Orsk, Ordubat, Olti, Omsk, Orenburg,* Local Detachments Omsk Local Artillery Detachment Osetinski Mounted Division ... Osovets Fortress Units ... ... ... Ochakov Fortress Units ... { St. Petersburg Fortress Troops „ Local Brigade Staff... ... „ District Staff... Yellow Brown Dark blue Dark blue Orange White Orange Brown Orange Yellow Scarlet Light blue Orange Brown Orange Brown Orange * Cossack detachments—colour of stencilling, dark blue.
240 Lieo? No. 2.—Distinguishing Letters Worn in Line, &c.—contd. Letters. Units. Colour of Stencilling. Пл Poltavski (Kuban) Cossack Regiments Poltava Local Brigade Staff ... Dark blue Orange II.M St. Petersburg, Petrozavodsk, Povyenets, Pudoj, Pinega, Prokhladnensk,* Pavlodar, Local Detach- ments j Yellow 1 Пр Permanent Local Brigade Staff l Orange Прм Primorski Dragoon Regiment Staffs of Pri-Amur Local Brigades ... „ „ ,, Military District Light Orange P.M Rostov* Local Detachment ... Dark blue c Rifle Artillery Divisions Crimson 06 Siberian Units... ... ... ... ... Crimson Dark blue Brown Orange Св Mixed Cossack Division Staffs Dark blue 0-B Sunjensko-Vladikavkazski(Terek)CossackRegiments Dark blue Свб Sveaborg Fortress Units ... ... ... { Orange Brown Свс Sevastopol Fortress Units ... ... ... { Orange Brown C.M Sestroyetsk, Slobodskoi, Sarapul, Solikamsk, Sterlitamak, Suraj Local Detachments Yellow ♦ Cossack detachments—colour of stencilling, dark blue.
241 List No. 2.—Distinguishing Letters Worn in Line, &c.—contd. Letters. Units. Colour of stencilling, Cm i | Semiryechenski Cossack Regiments ... I Dark blue j 0мл Smolensk Local Brigade Staff j Orange Орт Saratov „ „ „ 1 Orange T Turkistan Unite ... ... ... ... Crimson Dark blue Brown Orange Т.Г Turkistan Mountain H.A. Battery ... Light blue Т.Дг Terek-Daghestan Fortress Units ... ... Orange Brown Тж Heavy Artillery Divisions Scarlet Тм Tumanski (Kuban) Cossack Regiments ... ...I Tambov Local Brigades Staff Dark blue Orange Т.М Troitsk,* Turgai, Temryuk, Tiflis, Taganrog,* Turinsk, Tiumen, Tara, Tobolsk, Tyukalinsk j Local Detachments Tiflis Local Artillery Detachment ... Y ello w Scarlet Тр Terek Cossack Batteries Dark blue Трк Turcoman Mounted Division ... ... ...i Light blue Трм Termez Fortress Units ... ... ... ..J Orange Тф Tiflis Local Brigade Staff ... ... ... ...1 Orange — 1 Ulan Regiments Light blue * Cossack detachments—colour о£ stencilling, dark blue. (в 10626) Q
242 List No. 2.—Distinguishing Letters Worn in Line, &c.—contd. Letters. Units. Colour of Stencilling. У Ussuri Mounted Brigade Staff ... ... ... Ussuri Cossack Division Light blue Dark blue y-Дв Ust-Dvinsk Fortress Units ... ... ... { Orange Brown У.М Ум Urjum, Uralsk, Yst-Medvyeditsk,* Yryupinsk,* Ust-Labinsk,* Ust-Kamenogorsk Local Detach- ments Umanski (Kuban) Cossack Regiments Yellow Dark blue Finland Units... Crimson X Khoperski (Kuban) Cossack Regiments Dark blue Х.М Kholmogori Local Detachment Yellow Хр Kharkov Local Brigade Staff Orange ч Chernomorski (Kuban) Cossack Regiments Dark blue ч.м Cherdin, Chelyabinsk Local Detachments ... Yellow Чт Chitinski (T.B.) Cossack Regiments Dark blue 1 Ш.М Shenkursk, Shostka, Shadrinsk Shusha, Shema- kha Local Detachments э.т Electrotechnical Company ... Brown 1 Ю-У South Ussuri Cadre Transport Company ... । White я.м Yaransk, Yalutorovsk, Yakutsk Local Detachments Yellow Яр Yaroslav Local Brigade Staff i , Orange * Cossack detachments—colour of stencilling, dark blue.
213 LIST No. 3,—MONOGRAMS OF “ SHEFSKIE POLKI.” Monogram. Name of Colonel-in- Chief. Title of Unit. 1 Division or Rifle Brigade. 1 Corps. Alexander I 7th Byelorusski Hussars 48th Odesski Infantry Regiment 7 12 XIX XII tip <3^9 Alexander II 1st Yekaterinoslavski Grenadiers ... 1 Gr. Gr. Alexander III 12th Astrakhanski Grenadiers i 2nd Soflski Infantry Regiment 68th Borodinski Infantry Regiment 145th Novocherkasski Infantry Regt. 15th Pereyaslavski Dragoons 2nd Kurlyandski Ulans 3rd Smolensk! ,, 2nd Pavlogradski Hussars 3 Gr. 1 17 37 15 C. 2 C. 3C. 2 C. Gr. XIII XIV XVIII XV II III II 4 IB Alexander III i i । 16th Rifle Regiment 4 R.B. VIII gag 1 1 1 Staff of Guard and St. Petersburg Military District i 1 1 1 — Guard (в 10626) о 2
244 List No. 3.—Monograms of “ Shefskie Polki ”—continued. Monogram. Name of Colonel-in- Chief. Title of Unit. Division or Rifle j Brigade. Corps. । Ф «Д' Alphonse XIII of Spain 7th Olviopolski Ulans 1 7 C. XIV Empress Alexandra Feodorovna 21st Siberian Rifles 5th Alexandriski Hussars Krimski Mounted Regiment <5 Sib. 5 C. VSib. XVI sb <3) Grand Duke Dmitri Konstan- tinovich 16th Mingrelski Grenadiers Cauc. Gr. II Cauc. a 3> Giand Duke Dmitri Pavlovich | llth Fanogoriski Grenadiers 3 Gr. Gr. dr 8 i Katharine the • Great 81st Apsheronski Infantry Regt. 6th Glukhovski Dragoons 1st Zaporojski (Kuban) Cossack Regt. 21 6 C. 2 Cauc. C. Ill Cauc. XV II Cauc. X Grand Duke Konstantin 15th Tifliski Grenadiers Cauc. Gr. i II Cauc. I
245 List No. 3.—Monograms of “ Shefskie Polki ”—continued. Monogram. Name of Colonel-in- Chief. Title of Unit. Division or Rifle Brigade. Corps. & ж Tsar Mikhail Feodorvich. 13th Erivanski Grenadiers (except one company).* i Cauc. Gr. 1 II Cau. sb Ж. Grand Duke Mikhail Alexandro- vich 2nd Rostovski Grenadiers 1 Gr. Gr. ew Grand Duke Mikhail Nikolaevich 6th Tavricheski Grenadiers Caucasian Grenadier Artillery Bde.... 1st Caucasian Rifle Regiment 9th Siberian Rifle Artillery Bde. 1st Kuban Cossack Regiment 1st Kuban Cossack Battery 1st Kuban Cossack Infantry Bn. 2 Gr. Cauc. Gr. 1 Cauc.R.B. 9th Sib.R.B. 1 Cauc. Coss. C. 2 Cauc. Coss. C. Gr. II Cauc 1 Cauc. IV Sib. I Cauc. II Cauc. I Cauc. Л» & (Malo- Rossiski) Nil. 10th Malorossiski Grenadiers 3Gr. Gr. w 1 Empress Marie Feodorovna 11th Siberian Rifle Regiment 2nd Psovski Dragoons 11th Chuguevski Ulans 3 Sib. . 2 0. 11 C. IV Sib. II XI * One company wears the monogram of the present Tsar Nicolas II (see page 246).
246 List No. 3.—Monograms of “ Shefskie Polki continued. Monogram. i Name of Colonel-in- Chief. । ! Title of Unit. 1 Division । or Rifle Brigade. i 1 Corps. (Nesvijski) Nil. 4th Nesvijski Grenadiers 1 Gr. Gr. £ ж ii Nikolas I llth Sapper Battalion — VIII Й; 15. Nikolas I of Montenegro 15th Rifle Regiment 4 R.B. VIII cks чы> The Tsar (Nicolas II) 13th Erivanski Grenadiers* 65th Moskovski Infantry Regiment... 84th Shirvanski Infantry Regiment... 1st Siberian Rifle Regiment 17th Nijegorodski Dragoons Cauc. Gr. 4 21 1 Sib. Cauc. C. II Cauc. XLV III Cauc. I Sib. II Cauc. Ш Grand Duke Nikolai Nikolaevich 9th Sibirski Grenadiers 13th Rifle Regiment! 8th Astrakhanski Dragoons 3Gr. 4 R.B. 8 C. Gr. VIII VIII ifi 6 Grand Duke Nikolai Nikolaevich 6th Sapper Battalion — IX * Tsar's company only. Remainder of regiment wear monogram of Tzar Mikhft Feodorovich (see page 245). t The 13th Rifle Regiment wears also its number under the monogram.
247 List No. 3.—Monograms of “Shefskie Polki”—continued. Monogram. Name of Colonel-in- Chief. Title of Unit, Division or Rifle Brigade. Corps. Grand Duke Peter Nikolaevich Grenadier Sapper Battalion — Gr. & Peter I of Servia 14th Olonetski Infantry Regiment... 4 VI Peter the Great i ! 9th Ingermanlandski Infantry Regt. 3 XVII 1 Peter the Great 1st Moskovski Dragoons 1C. Gr. в (Samogitski) Nil 7th Samogitski Grenadiers 2 Gr. Gr. j ок 1 iW’fr Emperor Ferdinand of Bulgaria 54th Minski Infantry Regiment 14 VIII
248 List No. 3.—Monograms of “ Shefskie Polki”—continued. Monogram. 1 Name of Colonel-in- Chief. Title of Unit. Division or Rifle Brigade. Corps. X 1 King of Greece 1st Nevski Infantry Regiment I XIII SEP 3 The Tsarevich Alexander Nikolaevich 5th Kievski Grenadiers 14th Grusinski Grenadiers 51st Litovski Infantry Regiment ... 206th Salyanski Infantry Regiment 12th Siberian Rifle Regiment 16th Tverski Dragoons 1st Trans-Baikal Cossack Battery 2 Gr. Cauc. Gr. 13 52 3 Sib. Cauc. C. 3 Cauc. Coss. Gr. II Cauc VII III Cauc IV Sib. II Cauc. Ill Cauc. a King of Rumania 18th Vologodski Infantry Regiment 5 IX ж King Christian IX of Denmark 18th Syeverski Dragoons Cauc. C. II Cauc. Duke of Oldenburg 67th Tarutinski Infantry Regiment... 17 XIV «Ь ^^аИГ Emperor Franz- Joseph of Austria 12th Bielogorodski Ulans i 12 C. XII
249 List No. 3.—Monograms of “ Shefskie Polki ”—continued. Monogram. Name of Col onel-i ii- Chief. Title of Unit. L— - - Division or Rifle Brigade, i i Corps. 1 1 He-1 Prince Prederich Leopold of Prussia 6th Libavski Infantry Regiment 2 XXIII ЭМ, Duke Prederich of Meck- lenburg 8th Moskovski Grenadiers 2 Gr. Gr. vjp King Prederich Wilhelm IV 3rd Pemovski Grenadiers 1 Gr. Gr. King Frederick VIII of Denmark 1st Sumski Hussars 1 C Gr. Ф ж — King of Saxony 4th Koporski Infantry Regiment ... 1 XIII £1) ’ Grand Duke Lud- wig Victor of Austria 39th Tomski Infantry Regiment 0 V
250 List No. 3.—Monograms of “ Shefskie Polki ”—continued. Monogram. Name of Colonel-in- Chief. Title of Unit. Division or Rifle Brigade. Corps. King Victor Emmanuel 111 5th Litovski Ulans j i 5 C XVI <5? Emperor Wilhelm 11 of Germany i 1 85th Vihorgski Infantry Regiment 13th Narvski Hussars i 22 13 C. I 1 | XIX 1 1 sb Sig Emperor Wilhelm T 5th Kalujski Infantry Regiment ..J 1 2 XXIII King of Wirtem- burg 10th Novgorodski Dragoons 10 c
251 APPENDIX VII. MILITARY HIERARCHY AND TITLES. Thb grades of combatant officers, with the corresponding grades in the British Service, are as follows, the figures placed after each being those of the class of the “ chin ” or scale of relative rank to which they belong, and in which every Government servant has his assigned position:— (a) Generali. General Feld marshal Polni General ... General-Leitnant General-Maior ... (a) General Officers. I Field Marshal. II General. Ill Lieutenant-General. IV Major-General. (b) Shtabs-Ofitseri. Polkovnik ................ VI Pod-polkovnik..........1 Voiskovoi Starshina ...J (6) Field Officers. Colonel. Lieutenant-Colonel of {соЙкТ (c) Ober-Ofitseri Kapitan......... Botmistr........ Yesaul ......... Shtabs-Kapitan Shtabs-Botmistr Pod-Yesaul Poruchik........ Sotnik ......... Pod-Poruchik ... Komet Khorunji........ Praporshchik (c) Company Officers. Major of Captain of 'Begular Infantry, Artillery, and Engineers. Begular Cavalry. ^Cossacks. [ Begular Infantry, Artillery, J and Engineers. ] Cavalry. t Cossacks. Lieutenant of Sub-Lieutenant of Begular Infantry, Artil- lery, and Engineers. Cornet of Cavalry. Cornet of Cossacks. Ensign (in the Beserve only). The following are the titles of the various ranks which are used by subordinates in addressing them :— General ... Vashe Visokoprevoskhoditelstvo (Your High Ex- Lieutenant-General Major-General ... Field Officers ... Other Officers ... cellency). У Vashe Prevoskhoditelstvo (Your Excellency). ... Vashe Visokoblagorodie (Your High Honour). .. Vashe Blagorodie Your Honour).
252 The various grades of N.C.Os. are as follows:— (a) Pod-praporshchik Estandart-Yunker Pod-Khorunji ......... Zauryad-praporshch ik (b) Feldvebel............ Vakhmistr ............ (c) Starshi-Unter-Ofitser ... Starshi-Feierverker Uryadnik.............. Mladshi Unter-Ofitser Mladshi-Feierverker ... Polkovoi-Barabanshchik Polkovoi Hornist Batalionni-Barabanshchik Batalionni Hornist . ... Shtab-Trubach......... ... Sub-Ensign of Regular Infantry, Artil- lery, and Engineers. ... Sub-Comet of Regular Cavalry ... Sub-Comet of Cossacks. ... Acting Ensign (Sergeant-Major or Under- Officer).* ... Sergeant-Major of Regular Infantry Artillery, and Engineers. ... Sergeant-Major of Cavalry and Cossacks. ... Senior Under-officer! of Regular In- fantry, Cavalry, and Engineers. ... Senior Sergeant of Artillery. ... Under-Officer of Cossacks. ... Junior Under-Officer^ of Regular In- fantry, Cavalry, and Engineers. ... Junior Sergeant of Artillery. ... Regimental Sergeant Drummer. ... Regimental Sergeant Bugler. ... Battalion Drummer. ... Battalion Bugler. ... Regimental Trumpeter. Of these five latter ranks, the holders may rank either with senior under-officers or with junior under-officers. The quartermaster serjeant (J£apten~Armu3) has no separate rank, but is an under- officer. The various grades of rank and file (ryadovoi) are :— Yefreitor ... Bombardir Navodchik... Bombardir Laboratorist Bombardir ............ Prikazni............. Barabanshchik......... Hornist ............. Trubach............... Muzikant ............ Ryadovoi............. Kanonir ... Kazak ... Lance-Corporal of Infantry, Cavalry, and Engineers. ... Bombardier Layer. ... Laboratory Bombardier. ... Bombardier. ... Lance-Corporal of Cossacks. ... Drummer. ... Bugler. ... Trumpeter. ... Bandsman. ... Private of Regular Infantry, Cavalry, or Engineers. ... Gunner. ... Cossack. A private addressing a N.C U. prefixes the title “gospodin” (Mr.), “gospodin feldvebel.” * This rank was abolished in 1912, and retained temporarily only for those who held the rank at the time. • t Corresponding to Sergeant in the British service. $ Between Sergeant ana Corporal in the British service.
253 The officials employed in the Russian Army are civilians, and, in common with all Government officials, rank according to their standing in the chin. The army officials (yoennie klastnie chinovniki) belong to one or other of the following categories:— 1. Svyashchenniki .............. Glavni Svyashchennik Armii Korpusni Svyashchennik Divisionni Svyashchennik ... Svyashchennik............. Propovyednik.............. 2. Intendantskie Chinovniki ... Chaplains. ... Chaplain General. ... Corps Chaplain. ... Divisional Chaplain. ... Regimental Chaplain ... Evangelical Chaplain. ... Intendance Officials. These have no special names for the grades, which are only denoted by their class numbers in the chin. The higher in tendance officials are often military officers. 3. Vrachi..............................Surgeons. These also have no titles, but are classed from the III to the IX Class, the Surgeon-General of the Army having III Class rank, a senior surgeon (starshi vrach) doing regimental duty, VIII Class, and a junior surgeon (mladshi vrach) so employed, IX Class. 4. Veterinamie vrachi..................Veterinary Surgeons. As for Surgeons. The regimental veterinary surgeon of a line cavalry regiment has IX Class rank. 5. Artilleriiskie chinovniki...........Artillery officials. These rank from V Class downwards. 6. Injeniemie chinovniki ..............Engineer officials. As for Artillery officials. 7. Farmatsevti.........................Apothecaries. As for surgeons, but the highest have only V Class rank. 8. Voenno-uehebnie chinovniki ......... Officials of the Military Edu cational Establishments. Polko’de chinovniki ...................Regimental officials. Dyeloproizvoditel po khozyaistvenni chasti (X Class)..................Accountant. Auditor (X Class) ...................Auditor. Chinovnik dlya obucheniya muzikantov (XII Class) ... .............Bandmaster.
APPENDIX VIII. PARTICULARS OF FIELD AND SIEGE GUNS IN RUSSIAN ARMY. 3" Q.F. Schneider- Danglis 2-95" Q.F. Gun (1909). । 4 *8" Howitzer. | Heavy Artillery. Field Gun (1902 model). 1 Krupp (1909). Schneider. 6" Howitzer. 42 line Gun. Gun... Г Weight with breech me- chanism 4 Length Weight with gun carriage... Length of recoil Means of controlling recoil .. Muzzle velocity Maximum rate of fire Extreme range Maximum elevation and de- pression Traverse cwt. qrs. lbs. 7 3 12 90" cwt. qrs. lbs. 20 3 0 40—42" Hydraulic buffer and 6 springs on car- riage. Spade and brake 1930—1960 f.s. 10 rounds per minute 7,0o0 yds. t 16° 40'—6° 2° 45z each way cwt. qrs. lbs. 3 3 0 49" cwt. qrs. lbs. 12 0 27 Hydraulic buffer and springs. Spade 1250 f.s. 7,000 yds. 36°— ? 2|° each way cwt. qrs. lbs. 9 1 11 67" Hydraulic buffer and springs. Spade 1100—600 f.s., 5 different charges 7,700 yds. Ц 41°-3° cwt. qrs. lbs. 8 2 23 57" cwt. qrs. lbs. 26 0 1 44" Hydraulic buffer and springs. Spade 960 f.s. 8 rounds per minute 42°—0° cwt. qrs. lbs. 16 0 13 60" 1100—600 f.s., 5 different charges 4 rounds per minute 7,700 yds. cwt. qrs. lbs. 16 0 13 126" 1900 f.s. 10 rounds per minute 11,000 yds. | 254
Shield H.E. Shell f Height < Weight 1 Thickness Protection for ammunition wagons f Weight t Charge Г Weight 1 0 -2" J Armoured * Shield for protection of ammunition numbers. 14 -3 lbs. 1 -3 lbs. •117" 50-5 lbs 10 ’8 lbs. trotyl 50’26 lbs. 90J lbs. 19 lbs. trotyl 4 ’5 lbs. trotyl Shrap- 14-28 lbs. 14-3 lbs. 50’5 lbs. 50 ’26 lbs. 1 Details not Details not nel tNumber and size of bullets 260, 43 per lb. 280,41 per lb. 550,24 per lb. 550 [ known known Panoramic sight Yes cwt. qrs. lbs. Yes Yes cwt. qrs. lbs. — Yes cwt. qrs. lbs. Yes Weight behind traces (gun and limber) Weight behind traces (wagon and limber) Wheel track 38 1 12J 38 0 4J 5' i Gun and car- riage form 6 loads, 230-265 lbs. each§ Pack ammu- nition ani- mals carry 12 rounds each, weightof load, 245 lbs. 46 1 18 58|" 1 i 1 48 1 13 48 cwt. 255 * Gun has a shield ; no details known. t T. and P. fuze up to 22 secs. Extreme graduation, 6,066 yds. I For Horse Artillery these weights are 32 cwt. 3 qrs. 14 lbs., and 31 cwt. 1 qr. 1 lb. § Loads are—(1) barrel; (2) jacket and breech block; (3) cradle, drag-shoe, and pole; (4) carriage with axletree; (5) rear portion of mounting with w heels ; (6) gun and ammunition shields. 0 Limit of T. and P. fuse, 30 secs.
The following table gives the principal data of the siege guns and mortars, so far as known — — Guns. Mortars and howitzers. 4‘2-in. 6-in. of 120 puds. 6-in. of 190 puds. 6-in. (1904). 8-in. light. 8-in. 8in. (1877). 9-in. 9-in. light. Length 147 in. 128 in. 132 in. 180 in. 136 in. 56 in. 90 in. 63 in. 69 in. Weight 2,8891b. 4,333’5 lb. 7,022’2 lb. 7,300 lb. 6,614 lb. cwt. qr. 22 2 cwt. qr. 64 2 cwt. lb. 32 16 cwt. qr. lb. 33 3 18 Weight of ring shell ... 36-8 lb. 73’34 lb. 73-34 lb. — ? — 172 lb. — — Bursting charge, &c. ... 1-35 lb. 315 lb. 3’15 lb. — ? — 7’7 lb. — — Weight of shrapnel shell 16'78 lb. 77’8 lb. 77’8 lb. 90'25 lb. 180-5 lb. Weight of common steel shell — — 83’45 90-25 lb. 211*6 lb. 180-5 lb. — 307 lb. 335 lb. Initial velocity 1,798 ft. 1,400 ft. ? — p — ? ? Extreme range for common shell 9,566yd. 7,933 yd. 9,800 yd. 13,200 yd — 4,000 yd. 6,250 yd. 4,400 yd. 256
APPENDIX IX. (в Х0626} TABLE OF ENTRENCHING TOOLS CARRIED BY UNITS IN THE FIELD. Unit. Portable. Carried (in carts or on packs). Small shovel. Small axe. Small mattock. Sapper shovels. Axes. Mattocks. Crowbars, average weight, 9 lbs. Cross-cut saws. 1 Infantry. I Cavalry. Light. Heavy. Light. Heavy. Company of infantry 140 30 1 30 16 8 6 1 tO ••• Qr Infantry machine-gun detachment Company of a depdt infantry battalion 35 8 ! 8 8 • •• 4 8 ... (250 R. and F.) 50 75 ••• 75 ... • •• • a. ... ... ... ... Squadron of cavalry or sotnia of Cossacks 20 ... 20 1 2 2 ... ... • •• ... ... Cavalry machine-gun detachment Battery of artillery*— 28 ... 8 i — 6 । 24 6 • •• ... ... Field ... ... ... ... ... 40 I ... 16 4 4 Howitzer, 6" and 4‘8,/ howitzers ... ... ... 30 ••• 18 ... 12 3 3 ,, 12 cm. howitzers ... ... ... 43 ... 25 ... 25 2 4 Horse ... ... ... 24 ... 18 ... 12 3 3 Mountain ... ... 16 ... 16 32 ... 4 4 Horse mountain ... ... ••• 12 ... 12 24 ... 3 3 Heavy field ... ... ... 20 ... 12 ... 8 4 4 Note.—In addition, in all units, staffs, establishments, Ac., there will be on charge for the transport rank and й file, for one-half of the men, sapper shovels; and for the other half, light axes. When there is an odd number a 77 surplus light shovel will be on charge. These tools must not be reckoned in the number of which 5 per cent, are renewed each year ; they are kept in store and not used for any work in peace. • Reserve batteries carry half these numbers.
Table of Entrenching Tools—continued. Portable. Carried (in carts or on packs). Unit. Small axe. 44 GO Axes. Mattocks. ф g co S JO co 4) 1 о ев о 1 Small sh< Infantry, Cavalry. Small ms Sapper si Light. Heavy. Light. Heavy. Crowbar? weight Cross-cu1 Artillery park— Field Howitzer Mountain Heavy field Sapper company Air-line section of telegraph company Cable ,, „ „ „ Pontoon company Transport battalion, or auxiliary wheeled transport Auxiliary transport of hired camels Battalion of opolchenie Sotnia ,, ,, Battery ,, ,, • •• • • • • • • • TOO 18 15 73 32 20 70 35 31 40 80 • •• 20 30 18 16 24 32 24 18 12 18 20 io 32 16 16 2 32 11 9 12 9 • •• • •• 20 8 2 56 • • • 10 18 • •• 8 • •• • •• • •• 16 4 12 • •• 16 12 12 18 8 8 8 • • • • •• • •• 8 to: to to to : : : to to to to to 2 2 2 2 8* • •• 4* • •• • •• • • • ”4 to oi OD * 4 portable.
269 APPENDIX X. ESTABLISHMENTS. All peace and war establishments are now treated as secret by the Russian General Staff. The establishments given below are based on those given in the last published edition of Svod Shtatov (1910). They should not be con- sidered as absolutely accurate, but the changes which may have taken place since the establishments ceased to be published are not believed to have been of very great importance. I. Staffs. (1) Staff of an army. Units. Officers. Officials. N.C.Os. and men. Horses. Carriages. Commander, Chief of Staff, and personal staff 10 1 6 Quartermaster-General’s Department 19 2 22 — 13 Adjutant-General’s Department 9 7 24 — 17 General of Communications* Department 4 3 12 — 6 Field Staff Chancery 5 9 20 — 11 Intendance Department — ^8 32 — 11 Inspector of Artillery’s Department 12 5 39 — 8 Inspector of Engineers* Department _7 3 28 — 6 Field Pay Department I 3 6 — 2 Field Control Department j - i 7 12 —. 4 Field Hospitals Department i 1 9 24 — 7 Field Medical Department — 10 31 — 9 Field Veterinary Department 1 4 13 — 2 Lines of Communication Department 1 7 3 27 I — 6 Road Department 6 11 44 — 10 Post and Telegraph Department — 20 25 — 9 Transport Department 5 6 24 — 8 Field Judicial Department 2 — 2 — 1 Commandant at Headquarters 8 2 389 — 32 Printing Section — 2 17 — — Chaplain’s Secretary, &c — 1 1 — 5 Total 95 124 772 394 171 (в 10626) в 2
260 (2) Staff of an army,corps* Units. General commanding, &c............ Corps staff............. Corps engineer ................... Commandant at Headquarters .. Corps staff escort................ Artillery staff .................. Corps intendance.................. Corps surgeon .................... Corps veterinary surgeon Corps controller.................. Corps paymaster................... Corps court-martial (excluding tern porary members) .................. Transport......................... 3 8 2 1 1 3 34 4 2 1 13 20 4 3 8 15 4 2 68 13 20 4 3 8 15 Total ...................22 12 37 1 68 153 j 38 62 34 221 I47t 41 * A corps acting independently has a largely increased staff, which com- prises 45 officers, 56 officials, 373 N.C.Os. and men, 185horses, and82 carriages. t In addition, about 40 riding horses for officers and officials.
261 (3) Staff of a Siberian army corps. Siberian army corps staffs have a special establishment, as follows:— N.C.Os. and men. Units. 2 6 4 General commanding and A.D Corps staff................. Artillery staff ............ Corps intendance............ Corps surgeon .............. Corps veterinary surgeon 17 15 4 3 19 5 16 4 6 1 1 Total ...
II. Higher Formations. (4) A normal army corps. Units. Officers. Officials. N.C.Os. and Men. Horses. Guns. Other carriages. Com- batants. Non- com- batants. Total. Staff 22 24 68 153 221 147 — 41 2 infantry divisions 780 140 35,432 3,666 39,098 8,506 96 2,400 1 cavalry division 159 23 4,149 381 4,530 4,976 12 212 1 howitzer division 13 3 491 68 1 559 I 470 12 133 1 sapper battalion, including tele- graph company 26 5 1,027 -310 1,337 365 214 1 corps section of an engineer field park 1 — 17 61 78 58 51 1 corps supply column 6 — 13 637 650 1,209 — 536 Total 1,007 195 41,197 5,276 j 46,473 15,731 120 3,597 262 Fighting strength, 28,360 infantry rifles, 3,466 sabres and lances, 120 guns, 72 machine guns.
(5) An infantry divition. Units. Officers. Officials. N.C.Os. and men. Horses. Guns. Other car- riages. Com- batant. Non- com- batant. Total. Staff 5 3 22 33 55 31 - 6 2 infantry brigades 320 28 15,472 708 16,180 1,048 —. 478 1 artillery brigade* 43 5 1,451 189 1,640 1,417 48 168 1 artillery park brigade 14 7 771 89 860 1,011 — 261 Divisional train 8 27 — 814 814 746 — 287 Total 390 70 17,716 1 1,833 1 19,549 4,253 48 1,200 * 6 batteries. A few brigades have an additional division of mountain artillery. 263 The fighting strength of an infantry division organised as above is 14,180 infantry rifles, 48 guns, and 32 machine guns. In peace an infantry division consists of a staff, 2 infantry, and 1 artillery brigade, and in Siberian rifle divisions, 1 artillery park. Its strength varies; according to establishment, a division as above would number in peace 327 officers, 34 officials, 8,362 combatant and 402 non-combatant N.C.Os. and men, with 24 horsed guns and 619 horses, but the strength actually serving with the colours is usually from 7,500 to 8,000 of all ranks.
(6) A cavalry division. Units. Officers. Officials. N.C.Os. and men. Horses. Guns. Car- riages. Com- batants. Non- com- batants. Total. Staff 4 3 22 32 54 32 — 8 1 brigade of 2 regular regiments 74 10 1,840 122 1,962 2,126 — 69 1 brigade of 1 regular and 1 Don Cossack regiment 63 8 1,794 147 1,941 2,090 — 67 1 horse artillery division 13 2 381 61 442 537 12 53 Machine-gun detachment 6 — 112 19 1 1 131 191 —— 15 Total ' 159 1 23 4,149 i 381 i 4,530 4,976 12 212 264 The fighting strength of the division is 3,466 sabres and lances, 12 guns, 8 machine guns.
(7) A rifle brigade. Units. Officers. Officials. N.C.Os. and men. Horses. Guns and machine guns. Car- riages. 1 Oom- j batant. Non- com- batant. 1 Total. । 1 Staff 3 1 - 12 12 4 to о OS СЛ 4 rifle regiments of 2 battalions ... 140 20 7,668 384 8,052 548 32 236 1 rifle artillery division 21 2 724 88 812 701 24 83 1 rifle artillery park 4 1 257 24 281 333 — 85 Brigade train 1 7 — 337 337 295 — 116 Total 169 31 8,649 845 9,494 1,881 — 522 Fighting strength, 7,080 rifles, 24 guns, 32 machine guns.
266 (8) Cavalry brigades. Units. Officers. Officials. N.C.Os. and men. Horses. Carriages. Combatants. Non-com- batants. Total. Staff 2 __ -- - 2 2 2 1 2 regular regiments 72 10 1,840 120 1,960 2,124 68 Total 74 10 1,840 122 1,962 2,126 69 Staff 2 — 2 2 2 1 1 regular regiment 36 5 920 60 980 1,062 34 1 Don Cossack regiment 25 3 874 85 959 1,026 32 Total 453 8 1,794 1 147 1,941 2,090 67 Staff 2 1 2 2 2 1 2 Don Cossack regiments 50 6 1,748 ; i7o 1,918' 2,052 64 Total 1 52 1 6 1,748 172 j 1,920 2,054 65 The above may be taken as typical, but there are numerous variations, caused by varying strengths of Cossack regiments, &c.
267 III. Infantry. (9) Company, battalion or regiment of the Guard or Line. * 3,546 rifles, including the machine-gun detachment, not including the mounted orderlies. To the above figures there are certain exceptions, the Guard regiments having stronger bands than the others, and the regiments in the Caucasus having a different organization of their transport, which gives them 174 non-combatants, 4,048 non-commissioned officers and men of all ranks, 179 horses, and 99 carriages. In peace also, certain divisions on the German and Austrian frontiers, on the Black Sea coast, and on the Turkish Asiatic frontier have an increased effective approximating closely to the war establishment.
268 The following is an analysis of the war establishment of an infantry regiment:— (1) Officers— Regimental and battalion commanders 5 Officer in charge of administration ... 1 (lieut.-colonel) Staff officer 1 (lieut.-colonel) Regimental and battalion adjutants ... 5 Company commanders 16 „ officers 46 Other officers 5* — 79 (2) Officials— Doctors 5 Chaplain 1 Accountant 1 — 7 (3) N.C.Os.—f Serj.-Majors {feldfebel) 17 (1 per coy., 1 with non-com- batant coy.) Quartermaster serjeants (kaptenarmus) 19 (1 per coy., 1 pay serjeant, 1 quartermaster serjeant, 1 armourer ser- jeant) Senior under-officers 69 (4 per coy., 5 with trans- port) Junior „ 226 (14 per coy, 1 with scouts, 1 with mounted orderlies) — 331 ♦ i.e.y Commander of transport and non-combatant company, commander of scouts, officer in charge of arms, prosecutor on regimental courts-martial, and paymaster. The officers of the machine-gun detachment are taken from the company officers. t It is not known if the extra N.C.Os. for the machine-gun detachment are surplus to these figures.
269 (4) Rank and file—combatant— Lance-corporals (ye/m/or) Privates, (without arms) „ (with „ ) Mounted orderlies 320 240 (cooks, officers’ 2,896 12 servants, &c.) 3,468 (5) Drummers Bugler Band 33 1 35 (1 with Head- quarters) (with Head- quarters) 69 (6) Rank and file—non-combatants— Clerks Dressers (feldshers'), medical „ veterinary Others Transport drivers 10 22 1 29* 106f 168 (7) Horses (exclusive of officers’ chargers and machine gun detachment)— Riding Transport 21| L70§ ♦ г.е., 7 hospital orderlies, 1 chaplain's orderly, 1 armourer, 2 tailors, 18 artificers. t Not including drivers of the machine-gun detachment. I 13 for mounted orderlies, 1 for headquarter bugler, 2 for commander and serjeant-major of non-combatant company, 5 for N.C.Os. with transport. § Including 15 spare.
270 (11) Infantry machine-gun detachments. Peace. War. 8-Gun. 4-Gun. 2-Gun. 8-Gun. Lr 4-Gun. Officers. Captain 1 1 1 1 1 Subaltern 2 I 1 — 2 1 Total 3 2 1 3 2 Other combatants. Serjeant-Major — — — 1 1 N.C.Os 4 4 3 11» 6* Corporals and Privates 30 18 9 80f 42f Total 34 22 12 92 49 Non-combatants. Armourer 1 1 1 1 1 Shoeing smith 1 — — 1 1 Transport drivers 2 2 2 8 6 Total ... । 4 3 3 10 8 Total of all ranks 38 25 15 105 59 Horses. Officers’ chargers 3 2 1 3 2 Riding horses 3 4 3 20 11 Draught horses 10 4 2 47J Total I 16 10 6 70 40 Vehicles. Machine gun carts Q2-horsed^ — — — 8 4 Ammunition carts Q2-horsed) —• —. 8 4 Supply, &c., carts — — — ело QO 6§ Total 1 — ' * — 24 | 14 * i.e., 8 (4) commanding guns, 2 (1) commanding sections, 1 quartermaster- serjeant (commands transport). tt.e., 7 men and 2 drivers for each gun, 3(2) bAtmen, 2 cooks, 3(2) men with spare horses. t Including 6(4) spare. In Turkistan and Siberia 4 extra horses. § г.е., 1 with tools and stores, 1 with spare parts. 1 officers’ cart, 4 (2) section baggage and supply carts, 1 field kitchen. All these are l-horse carts, except the field Kitchen. In Turkistan and Siberia there are 8 extra carts for supplies and forage.
271 (12) A 2-battalion rifle regiment. Officers, 35; officials, 5; N.C.Os., Д67; combatant rank and file (including 17 bandsmen), 1,750; non-combatants, 88f; horses, 97f ; carriages, 49.* (13) A Siberian rifle regiment. See Appendix X (9) and page 46. (14) A Cossack plastun battalion. Peace.—33 officers; 4 officials; 736 combatant and 90 non-com- batant N.C.Os. and men, total 826; 12 horses. War.—22 officers ; 4 officials ; 737 combatant and 87 non-combatant N.C.Os. and men, total 824; 52 horses; 25 carriages. (15) A 4-company depfit battalion. Banks. Permanent cadre. Varying effective. Officers 8 6 Officials 2 — N.C.Os. and men— Combatant 100 1,000 Non-combatant 38 — Horses 7 — Vehicles 6 — * Turkistan rifle regiments have a differe nt transport system. Bee p. 47.
IV. Cavalry. (16) Regular cavalry squadron or regiment. —— Peace. War. Squadron. । 4-squadron regiment. 6-squadron regiment. Daghestan Regiment. Squadron. 4-squadron regiment. 6-squadron regiment. Daghestan Regiment. | Oset division. Littoral Regi- ment.* Turkoman division. Officers Officials N.C.Os. and men— Combatants Non-combatants Total N.C.Os. and men ... Horses Carriages 4 to 6 — 37 5 ’ 24 4 ! 4 to 6 30 6 36 5 24 4 11 3 37 , 7 о Ю i to 153 to 157f 8 705t 72 l,008§ 73 644 50 149 to 151t 5 629t 45 920§ 60 860 86 282| 37 ; 9i9§ j 193 273 14 161 to 165 777 ' 1,081 694 154 to 156 674 980 946 319 1,112 287 148 i 585 905 705 152 3 713 26 1,062 34 1,035 33 294 10 1,188 158 292 — • * In peace the Littoral regiment has two officers and 107 combatant N.C.Os. and men additional, 26 non-combatant N.C.Os. and men, 196 horses, and 58 carriages fewer. f 143 sabres. t 577 sabres. § 859 sabres. | 269 sabres.
273 The 'following is an analysis of the war establishment of a 6-squadron Cavalry regiment:— (1) Officers.—1 regimehtal commander, 3 staff-officers (lieutenant- colonels, of whom one is in charge of administration), 1 adjutant, 1 paymaster, 1 officer in charge of arms, 1 prosecutor on regimental courts-martial, 6 squadron commanders, 22 squadron officers. Total 36. (2) Officials.—2 medical officers, 1 veterinary officer,} 1 accountant, 1 chaplain. Total 5. (3) Non-commissioned officers.—6 squadron sergeant-majors, 24 senior under-officers, 48 junior under-officers (G of these are not mounted), 8 quartermaster sergeants (1 per company, 1 pay sergeant, 1 with quartermaster, these last two are not mounted), 1 transport N.O.O. Total 87. (4) Rank and Jile.—19 trumpeters, 48 lance-corporals (ye/mtors), 720 privates, 46 officers’ servants and orderlies. Total 833. (5) Non-combatants.—4 clerks, 9 medical and 7 veterinary dressers (feldshers'), 1 chaplain’s orderly, 2 armourers, 36 transnort drivers. Total 60. (6) Horses.—Officers and officials 76, N.C.Os. and men 932, transport 54. Total 1,062- I A second veterinary officer lias now been added to most regiments. (в 10626) s
274 (17) Cavalry machine-gun detachment. N.C.Os. ; and men. i И Ф Ш О Commander of detachment ............ Section commanders Orderlies and trumpeter............. Serjeant-major ..................... Gun commander and 10 mounted men per gun............................. 8 4-horse carts with guns .......... 2 drivers per gun................... 8 pack-horses per gun ... 1 range-finder per section ......... Quartermaster-serjeant.............. Artificers, officers’ servants, &c. Field kitchen, spare parts, tool and baggage carts....................... Spare horses ....................... 3 1 88 16 5 I 112 . 1 — —— 4 — — 3 — — 1 — 88 —— 32 8 —— __ —» — 24 — -. . 4 —• 1 ! 1 — 11» 11 — 7 8 _7f 1 14 19 191 15 * i.e., 1 smith, 1 armourer, 1 cook, 1 caterer, 5 officers’ servants, 2 feldshers. t i.e., 1 field kitchen( 2-horsed), 1 tool cart, 2 carts with spare parts, 1 officers’ cart, 2 baggage carts.
(18) Cossack cavalry. (в 10626) Peace. War Unit. and com- >8. and non- tants. .C.Os. en. and com- jS. and non- itants. 1 N.C.Os. d men. £ e Ф OQ 3 1 ogl 1 OQ £ ogf "O OQ Ф e Ф :ials 00 Й О Й5.' • GO Ogg, И Ф SP j о € Q £ 46 8 ев 0 о * § Q c 6 4 65,4 6 8 5 й 0 § о 0 я 0 0 я 1 to 1 я 0 3 141 144 140 3 144 149 Squadron in a regiment to — to } 3{ to to to — to } 5{ to |154 3 6 146 149 144 4 149 154 Don Guard regiment of 6 (peace 4) 36 5 587 93 680 563 35 5 868 101 969 1,057 33 squadrons Guard Combined Regiment 28 6 651 88 739 622 28 5 584 81 665 736 25 Imperial Escort (Kuban and Terek) 25 3 , 525 66 591 1,135 25 4 717 86 803 1,617 25 Regiment Don Line regiment of 6 squadrons 44 3 868 97 965 931 25 3 874 85 959 1,026 32 Kuban or Terek regiment of 6 squadrons Astrakhan regiment of 4 squadrons 34 5 868 102 970 932 22 5 868 85 953 1,014 32 32 3 579 75 654 630 15 ' 3 588 62 650 694 24 Trans-Baikal regiment of 6 squadrons ... 41 4 922 86 1,008 994 21 1 4 866 221 1,083 1,145 154 Don independent squadron 5 — 145 12 157 154 3 — 145 12 157 163 5 Kuban division of 2 squadrons 11 2 291 30 321 334 11 1 2 291 32 323 353 10 Amur regiment (8 squadrons peace, 28 5 435 67 502 505 24 1 3 873 220 1,095 1.151 154 war) о»
Unit. Amur division of 3 squadrons (war only). Ussuri division (2 squadrons peace; in war a regiment of 6 squadrons) Irkutsk squadron (in war a regiment of 3 squadrons) Krasnoyarsk squadron (in war a regi- ment of 3 squadrons) Orenburg, Ural, and Siberian regi- ( ments of 6 squadrons I Orenburg, Ural, and Semiryechia J regiments of 4 squadrons X Peace. 18 3 292 6 — j 133 6 — ' 89 875 439 439 War . 443 95 538 569 ? 216 43 43 1,091 | 1,158 482 ! 543 I । 482 543 154 have practically the same establishments in peace and war as Kuban regi- ments. A Siberian regiment has, however, 10 extra officers in peace. have practically the same establishment in peace and war as Astrakhan regiment. to With the exception of the Kuban 2nd Category regiments, for which cadres of 12 officers, 1 official, 26 non- combatants, and 12 officers’ horses each are kept up, there are no cadres for the 2nd or 3rd Category regiments; but it will be remarked that the peace establishment of officers is in most cases greatly in excess of the war establishment, and the furloughed officers are available, so that there would be no shortage at any rate for the 2nd Category regiments. The 2nd and 3rd Category regiments have four or five non-combatants fewer than is given above.
217 The following is an analysis of the war strength of a 6-squadron Don Cossack regiment: — (a) Officers.—1 regimental commander, 1 adjutant, 1 paymaster, 1 officer in charge of administration, 1 officer in charge of arms, 20 squadron officers. Total 26. (b) Officials.—1 medical officer, 2 veterinary officers, 1 accountant. Total 3. (c) N.C.Os. and men (combatant").—6 serjeant-majors, 40 senior N.C.Os., 40 junior N.C.Os., 19 trumpeters, 72 lance-corporals (prikaznie), 1 N.C.O. in charge of transport, 696 Cossacks. Total 874. (d) N.C.Os. and men (non-combatant).—28 officers’ servants, 8 medical and 7 veterinary feldshers, 4 clerks, 2 armourers, 1 farrier, 35 transport drivers. Total 85. (e) Horses.—53 for officers and officials, 922 for N.C.Os. and men, 51 transport (44 draught, 2 pack, 5 spare). Total 1,026. Other 6-squadron Cossack regiments have only slight differences from above.
Officers Officials N.C.Os. and men— Combatant Non-combatant Total N.C.Os. and men Horses 1 © о © 00 © »-* © © © 09 © м Guard regiment of 10 squadrons. Peace. 1,044 00 © ЬЭ 770 92 Line regiment of 9 squadrons. © © о СЛ © Ф 630 64 © сл Line regiment of 6 squadrons. оэ Ф 00 09 00 оэ 2 »-» 09 ф Caucasus division of 3 squadrons. 1 1 11 ьо tc Dep6t brigade staff. Peace and war. ю © 180 11 1 Сл Marching squadron. War. 1 00 о Ф 09 сл сл 1 Dismounted depGt detachment. >—» 00 о сл © СЛ 00 20th Dragoons DepOt Squadron. © 09 © ф 00 © сл 1 “ Littoral Dragoons >Dep6t Section. (19) Cavalry dep6t units. 8Z5
279 V. Artillery. (20) Field and mountain artillery. Officers Officials N.C.Os. and men— Combatant ... Non-combatant Total Horses .............. Guns ................ Ammunition wagons ... Carriages............ 1 2 3 3 1 1 241 253 10 26 67 11 267 320 * t.e., a division attached to a Guard, Line, Finland, Caucasian or Turkistan rifle brigade.
280 (21) Regular horse artillery. - Peace. War. Horse battery. Horse mountain battery. Staff of horse mountain division. Horse battery. Horse mountain battery. Staff of horse mountain division. . Officers Officials N.C.Os. and men— Combatant Non-combatant Total N.C.Os. and men ...' Horses Guns Ammunition wagons Other carriages 5 158 15 5 3 2 5 5 co 185 38 2 6 190 26 194 55 1 23 173 179 6 6 223 8 216 249 24 167 6 6 3 263 6 12 12 286 6 12 1 35 14 To provide for the administrative services, the senior battery in each diviaion has 2 officials, 3 non-combatants, and 2 horses attached to it in peace and war.
281 (22) Cossack horse artillery. Peace. War. Officers N.C.Os. and men- Combatant... Non-combatant Horses ............ Guns.............। Ammunition wagons । Other carriages ...' Total N.C.Os. 11 and men ... fl 1 5 1 7 5 10 6 5 5 5 5 5 167 181 133 181 169 ; 209 181 255 181 238 18 30 20 29 16 32 28 32 27 57 186 211 153 210 185 1 241 209 287 208 295 139 162 120 185 ,169 292 249 328 225 323 6 6 4 6 6 6 i 6 6 6 6 2 2 6 2 12 1 12 12 12 12 ' ••• • • • • •• ... ... 12 12 12 12 37 Batteries in Turkistan are on a higher peace establishment (approximately 200 men and 300 horses). Small cadres are kept up in peace foi' the 2nd and 3rd Category batteries of the Don and Orenburg armies. In the Don Guard, Kuban, Terek and Trans-Baikal batteries a reserve section of from 30 to 50 combatants is included in the war strengths. Batteries of the 2nd and 3rd Categories have three non-combatants fewer than those of the 1st.
282 (23) Howitzer division. Battery.—Peace'. 5 officers; 165 combatant and 13 non-combatant nou-commissioned officers and men, total 178 ; 89 horses; 6 howitzers ; 3 ammunition wagons; 1 carriage. War: 5 officers; 210 combatant and 24 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men, total 234 ; 225 horses; 6 howitzers; 18 ammunition wagons; 41 carriages. Staff of division.—Peace: 3 officers; 3 officials; 1 combatant and 20 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men, total 21; 6 horses. War: 14 horses and 13 carriages additional to peace strength. (24) Heavy artillery division. No establishments have been officially published. The following is taken from a reliable German source. Heavy battery (war strength)—4 officers, 181 combatant non-com- missioned officers and men, 22 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men ; total 203 rank and file; 156 horses. Staff of a division—Probably approximate to that of a field howitzer division (see above). The division staff includes in addition a special technical detachment with portable searchlights, observers, telephonists and scouts.
(25) Artillery paries. Officers. Officials. N.C.Os. and men. Horses. S.A.A. carts. Ammunition wagons. Other carriages. Ammunition carried. Combatant. Non-combatant. Total. Small arm. Shell. Park 4 1 257 24 281 333 24 34 27 336,000 3,128 Staff of park brigadef ... Park brigade of three 2 । 4 — 17 17 12 — — 6 — —— parks 14 7 771 89 860 1,011 72 102 87 1,008,000 9,384 Mountain park 3 1 219 50 269 240* — —• 2 —— 1,536 Howitzer park Heavy artillery park ... j 4 1 140 No de 19 tails к 159 nown. 171 — 30 16 — 2,160 1.870X * 128 pack horses carry ammunition (12 rounds each), 69 carry baggage and supplies. t The staff of a park division is probably similar to that of an independent artillery division (see page 279). t 1,120 for howitzers, 750 for guns. 283
284 (26) Fortress artillery. Turkistan battalion—Staff, peace and war, 3 officers, 5 non-com- missioned officers and men. Each company in peace, 4 officers, 162 combatant, 4 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men ; in war, 4 officers, 212 combatant, 4 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men. Termez and Kerki companies, in peace and war—5 officers, 212 combatant, 9 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men. The Nikolaevsk companies are maintained at war strength. They number in all, 10 officers, 2 officials, 784 combatant, 58 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men, 46 horses. The following table shows the peace and war strength of a fortress artillery battalion of 4 companies, and of a company in a battalion :— Fortress artillery battalion of 4 companies. — 1 Peace. i War. 1 Company. Battalion. Company. Battalion. 1 Higher peace strength. Peace strength. Lower peace strength. Higher peace strength. Peace strength. Lower peace strength. Officers i 4 4 ‘ 3 17 17 13 6 25 N.C.Os. & men— Combatants Non-Combatants 212 2 1162 2 112 I 1 850 650 8 8 1 450 8 1 I32? 1.310 10 Total N.C.Os.| and men j 214 i 164 113 858 658 458 ; 329 1,320
285 (27) Field engineer units. Peace. — Sapper company. Guard sapper bat- talion. Sapper battalion of 3 sapper and 1 tele- graph company. Pontoon battalion. Turkistan pontoon company. Siege park. Officers ! 4 35 22 13 10 2 Officials ! 2 2 2 2 — N.C.Os. and men— Combatant 123 999 486 248 250 4 Non-combatant 1 53 । 30 27 34 26 Total 124 1,052 516 275 284 30 Horses — 17 14 12 8 — The peace establishments vary, some of the units in Asia being maintained practically at war strength.
Officers Officials N.C.Os. and men— Combatant ... Non-combatant Total Horses Carriages 1 tO CD •4 to 03 O’ 271 80 O’ CD H.Q., 3rd sapper com- pany and searchlight section. Sapper battalion. ЬО CD 00 to 03 03 00 Sapper company with infantry division. to 2 Ci to s Ci tO to o< Cl 1 Pontoon battalion. СЛ О 03 00 250 78 to о | Turkistan pontoon company, i СЛ O’ 00 oo 17 61 1 H* Section of field park. tO CD 00 O1 oo Ci 8 00 03 to Ci to Siege park.
War. 286
287 (28) Telegraph companies. Peace. War. 1 Telegraph Company. Wireless Company, j Telegraph Company. Wireless i Company. Officers 3 10 9 10 Officials — i 2 — 2 N.C.Os. and men:— i Combatant 1 1 253 187 280 187 Non-combatant 1 21 162 147 Total 254 207 442 334 Horses —— 12 177 187 Carriages — 8 129 108
288 (29) Railway troops. — 1st Railway regi- ment.* Bailway battalion. Trans-Amur rail- way battalion.* Peace. | War. Officers 61 35 25 38 Officials 4 5 3 2 N.C.Os. and men— Combatant 1,684 812 1,045 1,946 Noncombatant 58 40 74 17 Total 1,742 852 1,119 1,963 Horses 48 10 113 ? Carriages 24 i 44 ? * War establishments. The peace establishments are the same, except that the 1st Kailway regiment has 7 non-combatants, 20 horses, and 8 carriages less.
(93901 я) * The Nikolaevsk sapper company has a strength of 8 officers, 279 combatant and 20 non-combatant N.C.Os. men, 105 horses Horses Carriages Total N.C.Os. and men ... N.C.Os. and men— Combatants Non-combatants Officers Officials i 1 1 8? co co to 1 to j Cadre detachment. Fori sap] 1 to § to CD 1 СЛ Company. :ress per. 1 to § 206 14 1 о Kronstadt, Sveaborg, Libau & Sevastopol Companies. Fortn | S.M. Peace. 1 to § 121 11 1 a: Others. s 1 w to 8 233 ; 17 River M. company. 1 1 8 i -s 1 1 1Й» 1st class. 1 1 »—‘ о 1 co 2nd class. le- Ph ich- nts. 1 1 to co 5^ 1 to Half company. Fortr sapp 1 to to СЛ s CO Oi | 1 ел Company.* 1 00 cd CO to CO сл О to eo8 Vladivostok Battalion. M to • to 1 to к СЛ 211 14 1 5 Kronstadt, Sveaborg, Sevastopol cos. 1 to | 1 00 133 689 122 ' 640 11 ! 49 98 I 9 Other companies. | Vladivostok i Battalion. 'ortress S.M. War. «IS § 233 24 Ь- River M. company. 1 1 8 00 I-I <x> 1 ж 1st class. 1 j Tele- graph detach- ments. 1 1 00 Сл 1 co 2nd class. , 1 1 1 96 996 i kS « J Telegraph company. j (30) Fortress engineers. 683
290 VII. Auxiliary Units. (31) A Field Gendarmerie squadron. Peace. War. Guard cadre. Line cadre. G uard squadron. ; Line squadron. Officers N.C.Os. and men— Combatants N on-combatants Total N. C.Os. and ) men ... J Horses Carriages 5 3 8 10 66 9 36 9 115 24 163 26 75 45 139 189 88 23 120 5 170 5
291 (32) Divisional and brigade trains. Infantry division. Rifle brigade of I 4 regiments. I_________________ i Officers 7 1 1 1 Officials 3 24 54 1 6 N.C.Os. and men 315 499 561 i 143 194 Horses 554 192 171 239 56 Carriages 210 77 75 i 91 25 (33) Corps supply columns. Army corps column.—6 officers ; 13 combatant,* 637 non-combatant non-commissioned officers and men, total 650; 1,209 horses; 536 carriages. Cavalry corps column.—6 officers; 13 combatant,* 420 non-com- batant non-commissioned officers and men, total 433; 794 horses; 327 carriages. • Cossack escort. (в 10626) T 2
(34) Transport battalions. —— Peace. Battalion staff. . War. 2 company bat- talion. 4 company bat- talion. Cadre company. Column with Column with pack transport. I Battalion of i 5 columns.* 2-horse ! wagons. 3-horse wagons. 4-horse wagons. Officers 9 21 5 1 3 3 3 3 16 Officials 3 3 2 2 2 2 2 2 12 co bO N.O.Os. and men— Combatants 190 378 95 — 13 13 13 7 65 Non-combatants 12 21 7 10 227 173 279 205 1,405 Total N.O.Os. and men ... 202 399 102 10 240 186 292 212 1,470 Horses 40 80 40 4 406 435 511 362 2,559 Carriages 20 40 40f 2 183 131 116 — 1,812 Load per carriage in puds — — —• — 25 to 27 — 40 to 43 — — * With 4-horee wagons. Shown as an example. t 1-horse carts.
(35) Supplementary transport battalions. — Krb&s. Other vehicles drawn by oxen or buffaloes. Camels. 2-horse. 2-oxen or buffaloes. 4-oxen or buffaloes. 2-oxen or buffaloes. 4-oxen or buffaloes. Officers 3 3 3 3 3 2 Officials 2 2 2 2 2 1 N.C.Os. and men— Combatants 13 13 13 13 13 15 Non-combatants 272 341 184 289 184 50 Total 285 354 197 302 197 to co Horses— co Biding 16 16 16 16 16 8 Draught for supply wagons or pack Draught for baggage wagons or pack ... | 481 —— — — — — Draught spare Total horses 497 16 16 16 16 8 Animals — 643 643 535 643 262 Carriages— 4-horse — — —• —— — — 3-horse — — — — — — 2-horse 229 — — — — — Total carriages 229 306 153 255 153 — Load per carriage, or pack animal, in puds 20 to 21 15 to 16 30 to 32 18 to 19 I 30 to 32 10 to 10}
294 APPENDIX XI. RUSSIAN MORSE TELEGRAPHIC AND SIGNALLING CODES. Rusiian. Equivalent. Symbol.
295 Russian Мовзе Telbgbapeiio and Signalling Codes—contd. w • 1 XvL18Sl£lIl • । 1 Equivalent. Symbol. T T Bob У и • • МММ Ф0 F < ♦ —м e X KH • • • 4 Ц TS МММ • шшл • 4 CH МММ МММ МММ • in SH МММ МММ МММ МММ Щ SHCH МММ МММ • МММ ъ b MUTE мм • • мм Ы I ММ • МММ MMI ъ YE • • МММ • • Ю YU • • мм МММ я i YA 1 • МММ • мм
296 Special Symbols. Imperial telegram.. Government tele- gram Service .......... Private .......... Foreign Calling up........ Commence message Wait ............. Number Urgent ........... Words Midnight to midday Midday to midnight Understood... Not understood New line ......... Correction........ End............... Receipt .......... Telegraphic numerals and stops as in Western Europe.
297 The signalling’ alphabet is the same as the telegraph alphabet, with the following exceptions:— Alphabetical. Call-up ................. General answer Annul: not understood : re- peat .................. Full-stop or semicolon Comma ................... Numeral 5 ... Numeral 7 ... Both flags held up. Code. Call-up General answer Annul: not understood : peat Infantry Cavalry Artillery Machine-guns Firing-line ... One flag held up. re- Reserve (or art. limbers) ... • • Patrol or group Advance Retire To the right „ left Halt The enemy ... • • •
298 Our shell are over ... ... . • (AB) n H H short... ... .——.(AN) H right... ... • — (AP) H M H left ... ... < — . — (AL) я П n range ... • —. . (AA) Special for cavalry. To call up horse-holders ... — • — — • (KN) Special for artillery (for giving orders from, observing station). Commence firing1 ............. — — Increase rate of firing ... —— —— • — Decrease „ ,, ... —- — • • High burst................ • • — • Low „ ...............— • • — Distribution wide......... . • • • narrow ... — Goniometer................ • • —* Numerals ... ... ... As per alphabetical system.
299 APPENDIX XII. (*) THE RUSSIAN ALPHABET. Roman. 1 | Italic. Equivalents. A a А а а Б6 Б б b В в В в V Г г Гг g (Ю1 Д д Дд d Е е Ее е3 Ж ж Жж j’ Зз Зз z И и И и i Й й Й й ? I i It i К к К к k Л л Л л 1 М м М м m Н и Ни n О о Оо 0 (*) As g in gate. (2) Transliterated as ye at the commencement of a word. (3) Pronounced soft. (4) At the end of a word, after ы or i, it is mute and is not transliterated.
300 The Russian Alphabet—contd. Roman. Italic. Equivalents. Il П П п Р Pp Р р Г Cc С с 8 Tt Т m t У у У у U Ф ф фф f X х Хх kh1 Цц Цц ts Ч ч Чч ch2 Ш ш Ш ш sh Щ щ Щщ shch3 Ъ ъ Ъ ъ mute4 Ы ы Ы ы i Ь ь Ь ь mute4 Ък И п ye Э э Ээ e Ю ю Ю ю У* Я я Я я ya 0 о 6 е f V v Vx i (’) As ch in loch. (8) As ch in church. (3) As shch in parish-church. (4) Omit in transliteration.
301 APPENDIX XIII. GLOSSARY OF MILITARY TERMS. Ranks and appointments. Adiutant Adjutant. Aptechni feldsher... Apothecary dresser. Auditor Auditor. Barabanshchik Drummer. Batalionni Battalion (in compounds). Bereitor Rough-rider. Bombardir Bombardier. Bukhhalter Book-keeper. Chinovnik Official. Denshchik Officer’s servant. Dyeloproiz voditel... Accountant.. Estandart Yunker Sub-cornet (Regular Cavalry). Farmatsevt Apothecary. Feierverker Serjeant of Artillery. Feldsher Dresser. Feldvebel Serjeant-Major. General Feldmarshal Field-Marshal. General Leitant ... Lieut.-General. General Maior Major-General. Generalni Shtab ... General Staff. Glavni Shtab Headquarters Staff. Hornist Bugler. Intendant Intendant. J al on er Marker. Kanonir Gunner. Kapitan Captain. Kapten-Armus Quartermaster-serj eant. Kashevar Cook. Kazak Cossack. Kaznachei Paymaster. Kvartir-meister ... Quarter-master. Khorunji Comet of Cossacks. Kister Evangelical sacristan. Kornet Comet. Kuznets Farrier. Labor atorist Laboratory man. Lazaretni slujitel ... Hospital assistant. Masterovoi Artificer. Mladshi Junior or Subaltern (adj.). Muzikant Bandsman. Nadziratel bolnikh Hospital Serjeant. Navodchik Layer. Ne-stroevoi Non-combatant. Ober-Ofitser Company officer. Obozni ryadovoi ... Transport driver. Ofitser Officer. Okhotnik Volunteer or Scout. Orujeini master ... Armourer. Pisar Clerk. Pod-khorunji Sub-comet of Cossacks. Pod-polkovnik Lieut.-Colonel. Pod-poruchik Sub-Lieutenant.
302 Pod-praporshchik........ Pod-esaul .............. Polkovoi ............... Polkovnik............... Polni General .......... Pomoehchnik ............ Portnoi ................ Poruchik ............... Praporshchik ........... Prlkazni ............... Propovyednik ........... Ratnik ................. Rotmistr ............... Ryadovoi ............... Sntabs-kapitan ......... Shtabs-rotmistr ........ Shtabs-ofitser ......... Syedelni master ........ Snarovshchik ........... Sotnik ................. Starshi ................ Starshi adiutant........ Stolonachalnik ......... Stroevi ................ Sverkhsrochni slujashchi Svyashchennik .......... Trubach ................ Tserkovnik.............. Unter-Ofitser .......... Uryadnik ............... Uyezdni voinski nachalnik Vakhmistr............... Veterinarni Vrach....... Voenni letchik ......... Voiskovoi Starshina Volno-opredyelayushchi-sya Vrach................... Yefreitor .............. Yesaul ................. Zakroishchik ........... Zauryad Praporshchik ... Zaviedivayushchi Orujiem Sub-ensign. Staff Captain of Cossacks. Regimental. Colonel. General. Assistant. Tailor. Lieutenant. Ensign. Lance-corporal of Cossacks. Evangelical chaplain. Private of Opolchenie. Captain of cavalry. Private of rank and file. Staff Captain. Staff Captain of cavalry. Field officer. Saddler. Fitter. Lieutenant of Cossacks. Senior. Senior adjutant (General Staff offi Head of a section in an office. Combatant. Re-engaged man. Chaplain. Trumpeter. Sacristan. Under-Officer. Under-Officer of Cossacks. Commandant of a recruiting circle. Serjeant-major of Cavalry. Veterinary Surgeon. Military pilot. Lieut.-Colonel of Cossacks. Short-term volunteer. Surgeon. Lance-corporal. Captain of Cossacks. Cutter. Acting Ensign. Armourer. Units and services. Arba.............. Armeiski ......... Armeiski korpus ... Artilleriya....... Aviatsionnaya rota Aviatsionni otryad Batalyon ......... Batareya ......... Brigada .......... Brigadni gospital ... Brigadni oboz Diviziya ......... Division ......... ... 2-wheeled country cart. ... Army (Line as opposed to Guard). ... Army Corps. ... Artillery. ... Flying company. ... Flying squadron. ... Battalion. ... Battery. ... Brigade. ... Brigade Hospital. ... Brigade baggage column. ... Division of all arms. ... Division of 2 or 3 squadrons or battaries.
303 Divizionni lazaret......... Divizionni oboz ........... Drujina ................... Dvukolka................... Eskadron .................. Feldyegerski korpus Gaubitsa .................. Gomaya batareya............ Gusarski polk ............. Gvardeiski................. Injenyemiya voiska Irregulyamiya voiska ... Iskrovaya rota ............ Jelezno^dorojni batalyon К ad г kavallyeriskago zapasa . Kadrovi batalyon........... Kantsellariya ............. Karaul .................... Kavalleriya................ Kavalleriski korpus Khlyebopekamaya Kirasirski polk ........... Komanda.................... Konnaya batareya Konni ordinarets........... Konno-gomaya batareya Konski zapas ... * ... Konski zavod .............. Konvoi .................... Korpus j and arm о v Korpusni prodovolstvenni train port... Kryepost .................. Kryepostnaya artilleriya Magazin medikamentov... Masterskaya ............... Minnaya rota .............. Minni sklad................. Myestni ................... Morskoi batalyon........... Mortimaya batareya Obmundirovalnaya masterskay Oboz........................ Okrug ...................... Opolchenie.................. Osadni ...................... Otdyel .................... Otdyelni .................. Otdyelenie ... ............ Otryad ..................... Park........................ Podvijni ................... Podemnaya loshad Pogranichnaya straja ....... Polevaya artilleriya ....... Polevoi podvijni gospital Polk........................ Pontonni batalyon Povozka .................... .. Divisional hospital. .. Divisional baggage column. .. Battalion of Opolchenie. .. 2-wheeled cart. .. Squadron. .. Courier corps. .. Howitzer. .. Mountain battery. Hussar regiment. .. Guard. .. Engineers. .. Irregular troops. .. Wireless telegraph company. .. Bail way battalion. .. Cavalry depot cadre. .. Cadre battalion (reserve infantry). .. Office. .. Guard. .. Cavalry. .. Cavalry corps. .. Bakery. .. Cuirassier regiment. .. Detachment. .. Horse battery. .. Mounted orderly. .. Horse-mountain battery. .. Beserve horse depdt. .. Stud farm. .. Guard or escort. .. Corps of gendarmes. 8‘J Corps supply column. Fortress. Fortress artillery. Field medical store depdt. Workshop. Submarine mining company. Torpedo depdt. Local. Sea battalion. Howitzer battery. Clothing factory. Baggage. District. The Imperial Militia. Siege (adj.). Section. Independent. Section, squad. Detachment. Park. Mobile. Draught horse. Frontier guard. Field artillery. Mobile held hospital. Begiment. Pontoon battalion. Wagon.
304 Prodovolstvenno-vyeshchevoi Г Supply and stores section of a divisional otdyel \ baggage column. Prodovolstvenni magazin ... Commissariat depot. Pulemet ............... Pulemetnaya komanda .. Pyekhota .............. Rezervniya voiska...... Rota................... Sanitarni otdyel....... ... Machine-gun. ... Machine-gun detachment. ... Infantry. ... Reserve troops. ... Company. f Sanitary section of a divisional baggage 1 column. Saperni Batalyon....... Sklad.................. Skorostryelnoe orudie ... Sotnya ................ Stroevaya loshad....... Stryelkovi polk ....... Svodni ................ Sy enopressovalnya U ch ebnaya komanda Ulanski polk .......... Upravlenie............. Uyezd ................. Vyeshchevoi sklad....... Voisko ................ Voennaya mukomolnya... Voenni okrug .......... Voenni sud.............. ... Sapper battalion. ... Depdt (store). ... Q.F. gun. ... Squadron of Cossacks. ... Troop riding horse. ... Rifle regiment. ... Combined ; provisional. ... Pit for preserving forage. ... Instructional detachment. ... Ulan regiment. ... Administrative staff. ... Recruiting circle. ... Clothing depdt. ... Army of Cossacks (in pl. “troops”). ... Military flour-mill. ... Military District. ... Court-martial. Voyenno-telegrafnaya rota ... Field telegraph company. Voyenniya soobshcheniya ... Lines of communication. Vozdukhoplavatelni batalyon ... Air battalion. Vyuk..........................Pack load. Vzvod.........................Section of a company troop, &c. Zapas.........................Reserve. Zapasniya voiska..............Depdt troops. Zveno.........................Group (infantry). Terms used in drills dec. Arierguard ... At aka....... Avangard ... ::: Byegli ogon... Blvachnf kvartir Boevqi poryadok Chasovoi Chasti ogon... Distantsiya... Dozor........ Dozorni Flang........ Front........ Galop... Glavni karaul Glavniya sila Interval Karaul ... Rearguard. ... Charge. ... Advance guard. ... Double step. ... Bivouac. ... Rapid fire (artillery). ... Close billet. ... Fighting formation. ... Sentry. ... Rapid fire (inf antry). ... Distance. ... Patrol. ... Scout. ... Flank. ... Front. ... Gallop. ... Main body of outposts. ... Main body, ... Interval. ... Guard.
305 Kolonna Krugom Kvartir Lager Lava ...' Lye Liniya Marsh Nabyeg ... Column. ... Turn about. ... Billet. ... Camp. ... Cavalry attack in extended order. ... Left. ... Line (of large units). ... March (command). ... Rush (in infantry attack), or raid (of cavalry). Nastuplenie Oborona Oboz Odinochni ogon ... Osada Otstuplenie Otziv Palba Patrol Peredovie post! Podchasok Pokhod Polevoi galop Polni Po rotno Post Pravo Pristryelka Prival Propask Propuskni post Pryamo Ravnenie Razomknuti stroi ... Razsipni stroi Razvernuti stroi ... Razvyedchlk Razyezd Reserv Rezervni poryadok Ryedkiogon Ris Ryad Sekret Seredina Shag Shereng Slujba Snyat s’peredkov ... Somknuti stroi Storojovoi rezerv ... Ж₽::: ::: ::: Uchashchenni ogon Vilka Vzyat v’peredki ... Zalp Zastava Zayezd (в 10626) ... Advance. ... Defence. ... Baggage. ... Individual fire. ... Siege. ... Retreat. ... Countersign. ... Firing. ... Patrol of infantry. ... Outposts. ... Communicating sentry. ... March or campaign. ... Field gallop. ... Full (interval). ... By companies. ... Post. ... Right. ... Process of ranging (artillery). ... Halt on the march. ... Password. ... Examining guard. ... Forward. ... Dressing. ... Formation with open files. ... Extended order. ... Formation in line. ... Trained scout. ... Cavalry patrol. ... Reserve. ... Reserve (close) order. ... Slow fire. ... Trot. ... File. ... Secret post. ... Centre. ... Pace. ... Rank. ... Duty. ... To unlimber. ... Close order. ... Outpost reserve. ... Skirmishing line. . ... Bayonet charge. ... Rapid fire (infantry). ... Bracket (artillery). ... To limber up. ... Volley. , .. Picket, patrol. . ... Wheel (of a body of troops). U
306 List of Abbreviations. Roman. Italic. Signification. English Equivalent. Ари. арм. armeiski х army Арт. арт. artilleriski artillery Б. Бат. б. бат. batalyon battalion Батар. батар. batareya battery Вр. Бриг. бр. 1 бриг. J brigada brigade Воен, телегр. воен, телегр. voyenno- military telegrafni telegraph Гв. Гв. (гв.) gvardeiski guard Гор. гор. gomi mountain (artillery) Грен. грен. grenaderski grenadier Див. див. (див.) diviziya division Драг. драг, (драг.) dragunski dragoon Жанд. жанд. jandarmski gendarme Жел. дор. жел. дор. jelyeznaya railway Зан. doroga зап. zapasni depdt (adj.) Ипж. инж. injenyerni engineer Кав. кав. kavaleriski eavalry Каз. каз. kazachi Cossack Кон. кон. konni horse (artillery) Кръ. кръ. komandir commander. Kpin. крп>п. kryepostni fortress Л. Лб. л. лб. leib bodyguard Мор. мор. mortirni howitzer (adj.) М±ст. мтьет. myestni local Ор. Оруд. ор. оруд. (оруд.) orudie gun Ос. Осад. ос. осад. osadni siege
307 Boman. Italic. Signification. English Equivalent. 11. п. polk* regiment* Пол. пол. polevoi field Понт. понт. pontonni pontoon Пр. пр. prikaz order Птр. птр. patronni cartridge (S.A.A.) Пул. ПЪх. пул. П1ЬХ. pulemetni pyekhotni machine gun (adj) infantry ПЬш. ПТЪШ. pyeehi field (artillery) Р. Р- rota company Рез. рез. reservni reserve 0. Сот. ' I сот. J sotnya f squadron I (Cossack) Сап. сап. saperni sapper Отр’Ьлк. стртьлк. stryelkovi rifle Упр. У*Р- upravlenie staff Шт. шт. shtab staff Э. Эек. эск. eskadron squadron * Also used for pontonni, polevoi, and park. (в 10626) и 2
308 APPENDIX XIV. CONVENTIONAL SIGNS ON THE TOPOGRAPHICAL MILITARY MAPS OF RUSSIA. (See Plate 1.) 1. Trigonometrical’point. 2. Topographical point. 3. Verst post (stone). 4. ,, (wooden). 5. Cross (stone). 6. „ (wooden). 7. Isolated buildings and houses. 8. Forester’s lodge. 9. Woodkeeper’s lodge. 10. Inn (stone). 11. ,, (wooden). 12. Toll house. 13. „ bar. 14. ,, picquet and cordon. 15. Quarantine. 16. Monastery (stone). 17. Church (stone). 18. Chapel „ 19. Mosque „ 20. Monastery (wooden). 21. Church (wooden). 22. Chapel „ 23. Mosque ,, 24. Churchyard. 25. Factory. 26. Water mill (stone). 27. м (wooden). 28. Saw mill. 29. Windmill (stone). 30. ,, (wooden). 31. Lighthouse (stone). 32. ,, (wooden). 33. Posting station. 34. Telegraph station. 35. Harbour on the sea. 36. „ a river. 37. Railway station, 1st class. 38. „ ,, 2nd ,, 39. „ „ 3rd „ 40. „ м 4th „ 41. Turnpike. 42. Ruins. 43. Wells. 44. Mineral water. 45. Direction of current. 46. Hidden rocks.
309 47. Whirlpool. 48. Ford on foot. 49. ,, mounted. 50. Bridge (stone). 51. M (wooden). 52. M of rafts. 53. ,, of boats. 54. Ferry. 55. Springs and unnavigable streams. 56. Navigable river. 57. Unnavigable canal. 58. Navigable canal. 59. State frontier. 60. Government and military district boundary. 61. Circle (uyezd) boundary. 62. Railway under construction. 63. ,, in working order. 64 1 ф/ >Chauss£e with trees. 66. „ w ithout trees. 67. Posting road with trees. 68. ,, M without trees. 69. Road with drains. 70. ,, without drains. 71. Small common roads. 72. Footpaths. 73. Winter road. 74. Fascine road. 75. Projected road. 76. Line of telegraphs. 77. Earth bank. 78. Causeway. 79. Dry wood. 80. Swampy wood. 81. Dry bushes. 82. Swampy bushes. QQ 'Ч > Upland meadow . 85. Water meadow. 86. Meadow with bushes. 87* " " hillocks. 88. Morass. 89. „ with reeds. 90. Flat sand traats. 91. Sand tract with hillocks. 92. Separate group of trees. 93. Woods cleared. 94. Orchard or fruit garden. 95. Vegetable garden. 96. Vineyard. 97. Rocks. 98. Mountains. 99. Water. (i) Sluice. (ii) Rocks above water. 100. (i) Sandbank. (ii) Inundation. (iii) Islands. 101. Towns and places generally.
310 Exira conventional signs, used for map of Asiatic Turkey, 1. Vilayet. 2. Sandjak. 3. Kaza. 4. Fortress. 5. Walled town. 6. ,, village. 7. Headquarters of police. 8. Fort. 9. Fortified bridge or port. 10. Cossack village. 11. Monastery. 12. Large village or colony. 13. Ruins or nomad camp (large). 14. Small village. 15. Settlement or nomad camp (small). 16. Stud farm. 17. Frontier post. 18. Custom house. 19. Posting „ 20. Lighthouse. 21. Small harbour. 22. Large ,, 23. Telegraph office, international. 24. ,, „ local. 25. Caravanserai. 26. Railway. 27. Post aiid caravan road. 28. Country and bridle paths. 29. Stream. 30. River. 31. Lake, salt marsh, cape, island, and gulf. 32. Mountain range. 83. Isolated hill.
311 APPENDIX XV. MONEY, WEIGHTS, AND MEASURES. Money. The coinage of Russia is decimal, 100 kopeks making 1 ruble, the par value of the silver ruble in sterling being 3л. 2-054<Z. The market value of the ruble in English money is about 2«. l|d. The coins in circulation are the imperial and half-imperial of 15, 10, 7|, and 5 rubles (gold), the silver ruble, pieces of debased silver for 20, 15, 10, and 5 kopeks, and copper tokens for 1, 2, and 5 kopeks. The official par value of the British sovereign is 6 rs. 40 kop., but the depreciated condition of the Russian currency raises the market equi- valent of the sovereign to about 9 rs. 40 kop. The paper money in circulation is inconvertible at the State Bank by which it is issued, but it has a forced currency. The notes represent 100, 25,10, 5, 3, and 1 ruble. Weights. 96 dolya = 1 zolotnik = 045 oz. (or 64-84 grs. troy). 96 zolotnik = 1 funt = 0-9 lbs. (or 14-44 oz.). 40 funt = 1 pud = 36 113 lbs. The following table is used for calculations:— Pud = 40 funt. Puds. lbs. cwt. tons. 1 = 36-113 = -3224 = •01612 2 = 72-226 = -6448 = •03224 3 = 108-339 = -9672 = •04836 4 = 144-452 = 1-2896 = •06448 5 — 180-565 = 1-6120 = •08060 6 = 216-678 = 1-9344 = •09672 7 = 252-791 = 2-2568 = •11284 8 = 288-904 = 2-5792 = •12896 9 ~ 325-017 = 2-9016 = •14508 Funt = 96 zolotnik. Funt. lbs. OZ8. 1 = •9028 = 14-4448 2 = 1-8056 = 28-8896 8 = 2-7084 = 48-3344 4 = 3-6112 = 57-7792 5 = 4-5140 = 72-2240 6 = 5-4168 = 86-6688 7 = 6-8196 = 101-1136 8 = 7-2224 = 115-5584 9 = 8-1252 = 130-0032
312 Zolotnik — 96 dolya. Zol. lbs. ozs. grs. 1 •0094 •15047 — 65-84 2 zzz •0188 •30094 — 131-68 3 — •0282 — •45141 197-52 4 — •0376 — •60188 zz 263-36 5 — •0470 •75235 — 329-20 6 — •0564 zz •90282 zzz 895-04 7 — •0658 — 1-05329 — 460-88 8 •0752 — 1-20376 526-72 9 •0846 zz 1-35423 — 592-56 Dolya. Dolya. oz. grs. 1 = •001567 = -686 2 = •003134 = 1-372 3 = •004701 = 2058 4 = •006268 = 2-744 5 = •007835 = 3-430 6 = •009402 = 4-116 7 = •010969 = 4-802 8 = •012536 = 5-488 9 = •014103 - 6-174 Length— 10 liniya 12 dyuim 4 „ 16 vershok 3 arshin 500 sajen Measures. = 1 dyuim (English inch). = 1 fut (English foot). = 1 vershok (1-75 inch). = 1 arshin (28 inches). = 1 sajen (7 feet). = 1 verst (| mile). Square— The square dyuim, arshin, and sajen are all used, also— 2,400 square sajen = 1 desyatina (2*7 acres). Dry goods— 1 garnets 8 „ 4 chetverik 2 osmina Liquid— 8 shtof (or 10 krinka) == 1 vedro -2-7 gallons. 2-88 imperial quarts. 1 chetverik = 5’77 gallons. 1 osmina = 2-88 bushels. 1 chetvert = 5'77 bushels.
313 INDEX. A. PAGE Abbreviation e— used in military works and orders ... 306 „ on military maps ... 308 Academies ... 98 Adjutant-General— department of, at headquarters ... 19 ,, in army corps 20 duties of, in field army ... 27 Adjutants, staff... 23 Administration of army ... 18-21 Advanced guard ... 140 Aeroplanes ... ... ... 84, 85 Age for retirement, of officers... 17 Air-line section of telegraph company 81,82,83 Air troops— aeronautical schools 99 air companies ... 84,85 flying companies ... 84 flying squadrons ... 84 Alphabet, Russian ... 299 Ammunition— amount carried by ammunition parks ... 64, 66, 68, 70, 283 „ „ cavalry 55 „ „ Cossacks 59 „ „ field batteries 64 „ » heavy „ ... 70 ,, ,, howitzer batteries ... 68 „ „ infantry ... 44 „ „ mountain batteries ... 65 » „ sappers 79 supply, graphic of... 71 Ammunition parks— establishment of ... ... 283 organization of 70 position of. during an action 71
314 Amu-Darya Flotilla Armament (see under various arms) Army— organization of, in field ... staff of, in field ....... Army Corps— composition of, in peace ... ,, in war establishment of, in war ... fighting strength of, in war index of ................. staff of, in peace........ „ in war Artillery, field— ammunition supply armament of personnel ... bivouacs brigade, composition of ... „ staff of ........... depdt units, formation of... equipment of personnel ... establishments gun, description of guns, number of, in peace inspector of, of army „ of army corps local detachments... organization of .......... rear services of tactics uniform Artillery, fortress— armament of personnel ... establishments of ... organization of siege guns in use ... uniform Artillery, heavy— ammunition supply armament ... establishments ... ... . organization uniform PAGE 93 24-29 ... 25-29, 259 .........31 ........ 31 .........262 ......... 31 ......... 203 ......... 23 29-30, 260, 261 .. 64,71,283 ....... 65 ........ 144 ........ 63 ....... 279 ....... 74 ....... 65 ....... 279 .......64,254 ....... 64 ........ 28 ....... 30 ....... 74 ....... 62 ....... 72 135-138 .. 51, 64, 219 ....... 76 ........284 ....... 74 .. 76, 256, 257 .......76,219 .......70,283 .......69, 254 ....... 282 ....... 69 .......70,219
315 PAGE Artillery, horse— ammunition supply 66 armament ... 66,264 Cossack horse artillery ... 67 establishments 280, 281 horse mountain batteries ... 65, 66 organization 65, 66 tactics ... 138 uniform Artillery, howitzer— ... 66,67,219 ammunition supply ... 68,71,283 armament ... 68,254 establishments 282 organization 68 uniform Artillery, mountain— 68,219 ammunition supply ... 65,71,283 armament ... 64,254 establishments 279 Horse Mountain Artillery 65, 66 62, 63 organization uniform 64,219 Attack, infantry in the 129 Automobile companies B. 87, 116 Balloons ... 85 Banneroles, of Cossack regiments 59 Battalion, formations of 128 Batteries, field ... 62, 65 Billets ... Bivouacs— 143 dimensions of for various arms ... 144 rules for Bridging equipment— 143-144 of pontoon battalions 80 „ sapper „ Brigade— 79 artillery, composition of 63 cavalry ,, „ ... ... ... 33 ,, establishment of 266 formations of 129 index of independent brigades ... 206, 207 infantry, composition of ... 33 rifle 33, 265
316 с. PAGB Cable section of telegraph company 81,82,83 Cadet corps ... 16 Cavalry (see also under Cossacks)— ammunition 55 armament ... 65 bivouacs 143, 144 brigade, composition of ... 33 „ establishment of 266 corps, composition of 31 „ supply column divisional cavalry ... 115,291 31,135 equipment... 55 establishments 272-278 lance 55 machine gun detachments 54 pioneer detachments 54 raids 135 saddlery 55 scout detachments 54 standards ... 56 tactics ... ... ... 132-135 transport ... 56 uniform ... ... 54,219-221 weight carried by horse ... 56 Characteristics of Russian soldier 125 Coinage ... 311 Colours, regimental and company, of engineers 78,79 „ „ „ of infantry 45 Columns on march, length of ... 139 Committees, recruiting 12 Communication detachments, of infantry regiments ... 41 „ system and means of, in field 82,83 „ troops 81-88 Communications, lines of— diagram of 36 medical service on 107 organization of 36,37 Company, formations of 127-128 Composite Infantry Regiment 146,147 Conditions of service ... 8-11 Contingent, annual, statistics of 13 Control department ... ... 97 Conventional signs, on Russian maps 308-310 Cossacks— artillery 67 cavalry 57-60
317 Cossacks— PAG в conditions of service infantry war formation of cavalry Council, military Courier Corps ... Court-martial, permanent, of army corps Cyclists 10, 11 47,48 199-202 18 06 30 41, 42, 46, 83 D. Daghestan horse, conditions of service in Depdt troops— artillery cavalry Cossacks engineers ... formation of, on mobilization infantry Defence, infantry in the Dirigibles, contained in air companies Disciplinary troops Dispensaries, field Districts— commandants of recruiting military recruiting Divisions— artillery ... cavalry ... formations of index of ... infantry ... Drill, terms used in ... 9-10 74 60, 61, 278 61 89 24 48, 49, 271 131 86 93 103 21 19-21 11,12, 21 62,63,65,68,69 32, 33, 264 129 205-207 32,263 304,305 E. Education of N.C.Os Educational establishments ... Engineer field parks „ siege ,.......... Engineers — field ... ... fortress 14 98 77,78,81,286 ... 77,78,81,285,286 77-81 88-89
318 PAGE Entrenching tools— carried by field park ... ... ... ... ... 81 a >> siege ,, ... ... ... ... ... 81 ,, „ units in field, table of ... ... 257-258 Equipment (see under various arms). Escort troops ... ... ... ... ... ... ... 48 Escort of army corps staff ............................ 30 „ of divisional staff ... ... ... ... ... 32 Establishments, peace (see also under various arms) ... 21, 22 „ war „ „ ,, 259-293 Evacuation service ... ... ... ... ... ... 109 Exemptions from military service ... ... ... ... 10 F. Field army, organization of ... 24-29 „ post 94 Finland, contribution in lieu of service 7,8 Flying companies 84 „ squadrons 84 Forage, amount carried 120 Fortress artillery 74-76 „ engineers 88-89 Fortresses, classified list of 217-218 Frontages in war 127, 129, 134 Frontier guard ... 90-92 G. Gendarmerie, field ... ... ... ... ... ... 92,93 General staff— at headquarters ... ... ... ... ... ... 19 duties of, in peace... ... ... ... ... ... 23 „ in war.............. ... ... .......26,27 promotion of ... ...................... ... 17 uniform ... ... ............................ 23 Generals, uniform of ... ... ......... ... ... 23 Glossary of military terms ... ... ... ... 301-305 Grades of officers, officials, N.C.Os. and rank and file 251-253 Guard— distinctions of uniform of ............... 50, 219, 223-226 equipment of, different from line regiments ........... 44 Guns— field, particulars of ... ............... 254-255 siege „ „ ............................ 256
319 н. Headquarter, staff Hierarchy, military Horse, artillery (see under Artillery, Horse). Horses, replacement of, in field Hospitals— divisional ... mobile field reserve rifle brigade ... ... Howitzer artillery (see under Artillery, Howitzer). PAGE 19 251-253 ... 61,96 ... 102 ... 103 ... 103 102,103 I. Identification, means of ... Imperial militia (see under Opolchenie). Infantry— ammunition armament ... brigade, composition of bivouacs communication detachment cyclists depdt units... equipment ... establishments machine-gun detachments marching pace of ... organization rifle regiments tactics telephones ... tools ... transport uniform Inspector-generals Inspector of hospitals ... ... Instructional automobile company „ detachments Intendance, duties of ... ... ... ... Intendant- Army Army corps Division 40 • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • • 219-230 ... 44,71 43 33 143,144 41 41,42,46 48 ... 48-45 , 46, 267-271 ... 40,41 127,138 39 45,46, 47 127-131 ... 41,83 ...44,257 42, 111 50, 51,219 19 105,106,107 ...87,229 14 122-123 26,122,123 ...30,123 ...32,123
320 J. PAGE Jews, special provisions with regard to service of ... 10,12,13 Judge-advocate-general ... ... ... ... ... 26 Kitchens, field........................................ 117 Lance Lava formation... Lines of communication— medical service on... organization of Local brigades ... „ detachments 55 133,134 ... 107 ... 36,37 ... 19,21 48 M. Machine guns— armament of personnel ... ... 41,54 description of ... 40,41 detachments, cavalry 54 „ infantry ... 40,41 „ rifle regiments 46 distinguishing mark on uniform 41 establishments 270, 274 range finders ... 41 tactics 131,132 transport 270, 274 Maps, conventional signs on ... 308-310 Marches 138-140 Marching companies ... 49 ,, pace ... 138 „ squadrons ... 61 Measures, Russian 311-312 Mechanical transport ...87,116
321 Medical service— PAGE ambulance train" ... 108 establishments 101 hospitals (q.v.) 102-103 reorganization in war 101-109 Red Cross Soviet у ... 104 regimental establishments 101 uniform ... 101 iVIilitary council 18 ,, districts ... 19, 20 „ service, law of ... 7-10 ,, terms, glossary of 301-305 Militia, Caucasian native 91 „ Imperial (see under Opolchenie). Mobile laboratories 73 Monev ... ... 311 Non-commissioned officers— education of grades of ... re-engaged... selection of Numbers available in peace „ „ ,• war 14 252 . 13. 14 .. 13. 14 22 36 Odessa Sea battalion ... ... ... ... ... 93 Officers— appointment of badges of rank education of grades, titles of of Opolchenie promotion of reserve of ... retirement of uniform 16 52 16,16,17 251 16 17 9, 16 17 60,51,219 (B 10626) N
322 PAGE Officials— appointment of 14, 15 grades of ... 253 intendance... 15. 253 medical ... ... 15, 2o3 veterinary ... 15, 253 Opolchenie— armament ... 50 artillery 74, 76 cavalry 61 infantry 49 officering of 16 service in ... 10 strength of in war 35, 36 Orderlies, mounted 41, 83 Outposts, system of ... 141, 142 Pages, corps of... ... ... ... ... ... ... 16 Parks, artillery... ... ... ... ... ... ... 70-72 ,, railway ... ... ... ... ... ... ... 8G Pay Department in field ... ... ... ... ... 97 Peace establishment, total, of Bussiairartny... ... ... 22 Pioneer detachments, of cavalry ... ... ... ... 54 Plastun battalions ... ... ... ... ... ... 47,48 Pontoons, dimensions of ... ... ... ... ... 80 Pontoon troops— equipment... ... ... ... ... ... ... 80 establishments ... ... ... ... ... 285,286 organization ... ... ... ... .......77,78 transport ... ... ... ... ... ... ... 80,81 Postal arrangements in field ... ... ... ... ... 94, 95 Promotion of officers ... ... ... ... ... ... 17 Protection (see under Advanced Guards and Outposts). Q. Quartermaster-General— branch of general staff ... ... .19,23 of an army in the field ... ... ... 27
323 R. PAGE Railways— department, chief of movement of troops by rail 25 37 Railway troops— 86 armament ... equipment 86 organization 85 park 86 uniform 86 Range-finders of machine-gun detachments... 41 Ranges, definition of, for old and new bullet 130 Hank, badges of 52 Rank and file, grades of ... ... 252 Rations ... 117 Recruiting— committees... 12 districts ... 11,12,21 procedure ... 11-13 statistics 13 Red Cross Society 104 Regiment, formations of the .. 129 Regiments, list of titles of ... 208-216 Remounts, supply of ... 60, 96 Reserve - divisions 34 first artillery 72, 73 96 horse depdts park, army artillery* 72 service in 8,9 troops 34 Reserve formation 128,129 Reserves, tactical employment of 126 Reiolver . .. ... 43 Rifle, details of 43 Rifle regiments (see also under infantn ) establishments ... ... 46,265.271 organization ... 45,46 transport ... 46,47
324 S. PAGE Saddlery, cavalry ,, Cossacks Sanitary sections Sapper battalions Schools (see also page 99) -• military N.C.Os Scouts— artillery cavalry infantry detachments .. 55, 56 59 101 . . 77-79 15 14 63 51 42 mounted scouts of Turkistan and Siberian regiments .. 4G Searchlights — infantry 45 section of sapper battalion Service— liability to ... reserve standing army voluntary ... Shefskie Polki, monograms of Shoulder straps, distinguishing marks on Signals, in cavalry Signalling— code... visual Staff- Army in the field ... ,, corps in peace „ „ war cavalry division ,, brigade college (Imperial Nicolas Academv) commander-in-chief in field duties infantry division ... ,, brigade .... military district Siberian army corps Strength, estimated fully mobilized 78, 79, 80 .. 7-11 8 8 9 243-250 219-250 132,133 294-298 ... 41,83 25-29,259 23 29, 30, 260 32 33 .. 17, 99 25 ... 22,23 32 33 ... 20,21 261 36
325 Supplies— columns, corps magazines ... number of days carried system of Sword PAGK ... 114, 115, 291 120,121 ........ 119 118-124 43, 55, 59 T. Tactics— advanced guards 140-141 artillery 135-138 attack 129, 130 cavalry 132, 135 defence 131 flank guards 140 frontages .127,129,134 general 125,126 infantry 127-131 machine-guns 131, 132 marches 138 Technical troops 77-89 Telegraph code ... 294 Telegraph companies— equipment ... 82 establishments 287 organization 81 trans]>ort ... 82 Telegraph squadrons ... 84 Telephones (see also page 83)— army corps ... 30 artillery 65 cavalry 56 infantry 41 „ divisions ... 32 engineers ... 79, 82 Tools (see under entrenching tools). Topographers, corps of military 95 'Trains - - armament ... 114 brigade 112-114 divisional 112-114 sanitary 101,102 uniform 114,228
326 PAGE Trains, number required for various units ... ... ...37,38 Trans-Amur railway brigade ... ... ... ... ... 86,86 ,, frontier guard ... ... ... ... ... 92 Transliteration of Russian alphabet ... ... ... 299,300 Transport (see also under various arms) — classification of ... ... ... ... ... ... Ш mechanical ... ... ... ... ... 87,116 position on march... ... ... ... ... 111,138 U. Uniform (see also under various arms) — distinctive marks on ... ... ... ... 219-250 general note on ... ... ... ... ... .. 50,51 V. Veterinary — arrangements in the field... ... ... ... 109,110 officials ... ... ... ... ... ... 15,253 Volunteers— “shortterm” ... ... ... ... ... . 9 „ distinctive badge worn by ... ... 52 other than short term ... ... ... ... ... 9 W. War establishments ... ... ... ... ... 259 -293 ,, Minister ... ... ... ... ... ... ... 18 ,, Office ... ... ... ... ... ... 18 Weights and measures... ... ... ... ... 311,312 Wireless, telegraph companies ... ... 81,82,287 v YeJ reitors 252
Infantry Officer. Infantry Officer, in great coat. 6. w В л L-.f 14.
Plate 2. Private of Infantry. N.C.O. of Infantry in great coat.
Plate с
General. Officer of Guard Infantiy Private (^Semenov, RegT) Guard Infantry. ШВ- w.B & L.l.H
Plate 4 of Cavalry. Cavalry Officer. IH9 W-B A L.I.I+.
Plate б- Badges of Rank etc. (See paqe 52.) Officers Shoulder-straps. Field - Marshal. General. Lieut-General. Major-General. Colonel of General Staff Lieut- Colonel (of Infant^) Staff-Captain (9Ф Dragoons) Captain ( Is? Yekaterinoslarski Grenadiers) Ensign of Reserve (Sappers) Sub-Ensign (Infantry.)
Plate 6 N.C.O? Shoulder-straps. Sergt-major. Senior under officer. Special Badges. Short Term Volunteer ( о t Cava Iry Scout Г Of Guard Lancer Regiment.) Bombardier layer of Field Artillery Bombardier observer of Field Artillery. Ji*. Junior under-officer. Guard units Badges worn on Sleeve, Scout detachment ( Infantry) Macntne-qun pioneer .... _ . . . detachment detachment. ArtilleryTelephonist.
Plate Shoulder-straps and Collar patches on Greatcoat. (Seepages 219,220,222.) CAVA LRY. INFANTRY AND ARTILLERY. The shoulder-straps vary in colour; Dragoon Regiments have white or dark-green piping, Lancer Regiments blue piping, Hussar Regiments no pi pi n g. Th er collar- patches are usually the same colour as the shout der-straps^but there are many exceptions. COSSACKS. The shoulder-straps vary according to the V01SKO; the collar patches are the same colour as the shoulder-straps. Iet Regiment. 2?^ Regiment., of each Infantry Division. ЗГ* Regiment 4?! Regiment, of each Infantry Division. Rifle Regiment. Field Artillery ( Sappers similar to Artillery but with white metal buttons instead of yellow) Don Cossacks Ural Cossacks Orenberg Cossacks
Plate 8 Distinctions ofGuard Units(Infantry&Artillery.) (seepagesz^-zze) PIPING ON SHOULDER STRAPS (RANK & Fl LE) & О N BREAST POCKETS (OFFICERS) Guard Rifle Regiments l*!Regitnerrtin i?t and W Guard InfantryDivisions. £nd 3r<^ ^Regiment___________Regiment in each Guard ffifantry 4+ь _____Regiment Division l?t Regiment in 3rd Guard Infantry Division Guard Artillery (Guard Sappers have white metal buttons) No piping on pockets. Piping ом Cu ffs.( all ranks) IT* Infantry Division and IT* Rifle Regi ment - BB BBB 2?dlnfantry 3C? Infantry 3rd Rifle I^Artillery 2ndArtillery 3ra Artillery Rifle Howitzer Division Division. Regiment Brigade Brigade. Brigade Artillery Artillery Division Division
Mate .9 Shoulder Straps ofInfantry&CavalryUnits.
Special Badges on Shoulder- str a ps . Technical and Artillery Units • Pla^e 1. №l Ra i I way TrOOpS. N?6 Engineer Siege Parks №2 Automobile Companies М/ №7 Mining Units. №11 Wireless Telegraph Companies. №3 Odessa Na^al Battalion №4 Grenadier Sapper Battalion N?5 Sapper Batta lions N?8 Pontoon Units. N?9 Air Units. №12 Grenadier Ariillery. №13 Arti 11 e ry. Telegraph Units ( except Telegraph Coy.s of Sapper Battalions.) №14 Artillery Parks.
Platell. Shoulder-straps of Technical & Artillery Units- 8th Siberian Rifle Artillery Brigade* 5** Rifle Artillery Division. ЗГ^ Howitzer Artillery Division. 2n.d Heavy Arti llery Division- Kovno Fortress Artillery. 2^ Horse Artillery Division. 22™* Park Brigade Don Cossack Artillery Division.
riatf: 1C. Company Flags. (Seepage 45? MB. Groundwork of Company Flag same colour аз regimental colour f See Plate t'3.) Horizontal stripe cenotes number of battalion in its Regiment. Red-if* Battalion t Blue — 2”* Bsttal:оп, White Battalion, Green — 4t** Battalion. Vertical artripe denotes number of Company in its Battalion m similar Pashion, Companies are numbered consecutively throughout Regiment. Reg Trans-Baikal Regiments. Sibe* tan Regiments- Sear/et with White Cross. Sem'iryechie Regiments — Crimson with White Cross. Astra khan Regiments —Yellow. Amur Regiments — Dark Green with Yellow Cross. Ussuri Regiments— Dark Green. 2nd Squadron Cossack Squadron (Sotnia) Banneroles. (See page 59) 3?? Squadron of a Don Cossacrk Regiment. 4th Squadron 5**? Squadron of an Ural Cossack Regi ment. 6*.h. Squadron or an Orenburg Cossack Regiment. Upper half of same Colour as Regimental flag. Lower half denotes number of Squadron m Regiment.
fla.te 13 Cavalry Division. H.Q Rifle Brigad Cossack Division.H.Q. Reg IV. 7 --------------«-----I f a di vi si о n< Rad in /?Г Regiment oj B/ue in гп.<! White in 3”* Green in 4* Crimson in Rifle Regiments.